IS HI BBBEBtiBm Fig. 11. \J THE ELEMENTS OF READING AND ORATORY. Verum ill! persuasione sua fruantur, qui hominibus, ut sint oratores, satis putant nasci: noetro labori dent veniam, qui nihil credimus esse perfectum, nisi ubi natura cuva juvetur. QUINCTILIAS. BY HENRY MANDEVILLE, D. D. PROFESSOR OF MORAL SCIENCE AND BELLES-LETTRES IN HAMILTON COLLEGE. A NEW REVISED EDITION. NEW YORK: D. APPLETON & COMPANY, 200 BROADWAY, PHDLADELPHIA : GEO. S. APPLETON, 164 CHESNUT-STREET. M DCCC L. » s ?* a- Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1849, By D. APPLETON & COMPANY, In the Clerk's Office of the District Court of the United States for the Southern District of New York. Gift Ju ageandMrs.j. R . Hltt Dec -a, 2 936 PREFACE. Of all the departments of learning in our schools, there is none which, by general concession, is more important than that of reading and speaking ; and yet, there is none in which the instruction given is at once so arbitrary, so vague, so unprofitable. In every other, there exists some recognised standard of propriety, tangible, and always at hand, by reference to which, the student can accurately prepare himself for recitation beforehand ; and by reference to which, should he make a mistake, while the recitation is in progress, his teacher can intelligibly correct him : make him clearly comprehend the nature of the error into which he has fallen, and effectually guard him against a repetition of it. In writing, he must imitate his copy * in geography, he must implicitly receive the statements of his text-book and studiously conform to the delineations -of his map : in arithmetic, every process has its rule, which offers itself to him as an infallible guide, through all the intricacies and mazes of numbers : in reading and speaking alone, he is left to acquire a correct and graceful delivery as he may, with such imperfect light as his teacher, whose judgment may be riper, but whose scources of information are not better than his own, can throw upon his path. In truth, the only means by which either of them can deter- mine, that a given passage should be delivered in one way rather than in another, is a mere supposition ; namely, that such is the way in which it would be delivered by an artless speaker ; or, to adopt the cant phraseology of the day on this subject, such is the natural way ; or the way in which one would deliver^itPvvho^cohTorms to nature : a supposition, which, con- sidering the inexperience of the parties forming it, the extensive observa- tion and comparison of the best models of delivery, the cultivated judgment, and the nice critical tact necessary to form it, and withal the prevalence of bad examples even at the Bar and in the Pulpit, to say nothing of the vicious elocution of the multitude, is as liable to be false as true ; and whether false or true, it can be neither denied nor affirmed ; since there is nothing beyond itself, in the shape of an authorized standard, with which it may be compared. To conform to nature, or rather to know when we conform to nature, we should previously know what that nature is : what it prescribes : what it excludes. The inadequacy, I had almost said, the absurdity, of such a method of instruction in grammar, if method it may be called, would be apparent to the most indifferent thinker in the land. Imagine a student endeavoring to acquire a knowledge of its principles without a nomenclature, designa- ting and describing the parts of speech: without examples, illustrating X* Pts. Bd. 6 PREFACE. them: without rules, showing their relation and government: in short, without any guide whatever to a knowledge of its tacts and laws, except a vague reference to the conflicting practice of those who speak and write the English language : does not every one perceive that, with such means of study, it would be all but impossible to obtain a clear insight into the mysteries of the science ? or that, if some inquirer, more ardent than usual, should persist in the pursuit until success crowned at length his diligence, the work would consume a large proportion of his life ? Yet there is no difficulty here which does not meet the student in learning to read and speak by the same process ; the scene is changed, but the actor and his part remain as before. He must grope his way in the dark in the same manner : with uncertain footing, and at a venture. He can never be sure of his position, and he is as likely to move in a circle as to advance. Nor will it materially avail him, in the absence of a nomenclature and of rules, that he possesses in his teacher the very best model of elocution. From such a teacher he may acquire a good articulation, for this in some measure is subject to rule ; but beyond this, which though important is yet subordinate, he can derive no more aid from such a teacher than from any other immeasurably his inferior. Indeed, he will derive less, if the latter, with his imperfect qualifications as a reader, should happen to possess the superior tact as a disciplinarian : greater facility in winning the regard of his pupils ; in commanding their attention ; in exciting their emulation. In other respects the more and the less gifted teacher occupy, in relation to him, the same level. Neither of them can do more than superintend his exercises : neither of them can add any thing to the benefit he derives from the practice those exercises afford. Whatever may be his faults of modulation, no correction of theirs, however just, can, from the very nature of the case, be followed by improvement. To have ocular and auricular demonstration of this, we have only to enter one of our schools in city or country, when a class, containing perhaps a dozen pupils, is called up to read. Observe. The lesson, distributed among them, gives to each scarcely more than a single sentence for rehearsal. One of the pupils, reading his sentence, fails in the judgment of the teacher, to employ the proper delivery. He is now shown how it should be read, (that is, the teacher reads it for him, with, what he deems, the proper modulation,) and is commanded to read it again ; and this time, we may presume, he will read it correctly. But what then ? If this was the only sentence he ever expected to read, the correction might answer a good purpose. He would probably remember it ; and at the next reading, and still more certainly at the next, he would make no mistake. But when called up again, he has the infinitesimal portion of another lesson, to which no correction of the one previously read, is applicable ; or if it is, neither he nor his teacher is aware of it. His reading is again faulty, and is again corrected ; and so on with every suc- cessive lesson, day after day, the year through. Each correction is an independent one. Having its root in no settled principle, illustrated by examples ; falling under no general law T , confirmed by reason and obvious facts ; it neither borrows light from the past, nor reflects light on the future. It guards the pupil against nothing but the specific error cor- rected : its whole force is exhausted on a single sentence which may never be read again, or if read, recognised as having been read before. It is therefore manifestly of no use, then or thenceforward. In any PREFACE. 7 other branch of study, it would be the stepping-stone of a continually accel- erating progress ; here it terminates with itself : elsewhere a quickening spirit ; here a dead letter. These obvious defects of the prevailing method of instruction, and the enormous waste both of money and of time it occasions, have led a number of ingenious and able men, during the last sixty or seventy years, to inquire whether a better one could not be devised : whether, in other words, the facts and principles of elocution could not be systematized like those of grammar, arithmetic, &c, and hence taught in the same manner. Their works, which are before the public, and well known, propose for our consideration, two distinct systems : the one formed on sentential con- struction ; the other, variously modified, on a theory of Dr. Rush. Of these, the first is unquestionably the system of nature ; and that it should not have made its way into public favor, and become the basis of elemen- tary instruction wherever the English language is spoken, must be im- puted, not to any thing wrong in the plan, but simply to the imperfect manner in which, hitherto, it has been developed ; for, unfortunately, Mr. Walker, by whom it was first broached in his " Elements of Elocution," and by whom it was carried to a point not yet passed, and scarcely reached, by those who have followed him, stopped short with an extremely imperfect account of one or two sentences only, and arbitrarily applied, or expected the student to apply, the laws derived from these to every other, however unlike in structure. Hence his failure : acknowledged by himself in the Rhetorical Grammar which he published subsequently to the " Elements." His work, therefore, sustains the same relation to a complete system of Elocution, that would be sustained by a defective map of the state of New York to a universal Atlas; and, carrying the illus- tration a little farther, to expect it, with whatever diligence studied, to form a good reader or speaker, would be equivalent to expecting that a man, by looking at such a map of this state, should be qualified to describe the boundaries, towns, rivers, lakes and mountains, of every other state and empire on the surface of the globe. The other system, that derived from Dr. Rush, and confined, I believe, to this country, however ingenious, and though ably and fully developed, is rather, it must be admitted, a system of vocal exercises than of elocution : as such, its utility in the schoolroom is not readily seen. Should a person become thoroughly versed in its various movements, which is no easy attainment, he has not taken as yet one step toward a correct and graceful delivery of a single sentence in the English language. Suppose a sentence presented : the question is, with what vocal movements, or more generally, with what modulation, shall it be read or spoken ? To this question the system gives no reply : the appropriate delivery is yet to be ascertained. These authors end, therefore, -just where Walker and others begin ; or if they proceed farther, and prescribe a delivery for a given passage, they are governed in so doing by no broad general principles authorized by induction, but by the caprices of individual tastes, or like the writers just mentioned, by questionable laws derived from a few isolated cases. — I may add, that this system is exposed to the serious objection of having a strong tendency to form an artificial and mechanical delivery. I have met with several individuals, whose voices, trained by its processes, very distinctly be- trayed it. 8 PREFACE. Such are the exceptions which may be taken to the most systematic and elaborate writers on elocution : writers of the higher aim, and the more solid worth. Of others, it is scarcely necessary to speak ; for they attempt rather to mitigate the evils of the existing method of instruction, than to remove them by introducing another. Their observations are local, iso- lated, special : not without value in the particular instances to which they apply ; but apart as they are from principles, and incapable of generaliza- tion, they merely supersede the incidental and arbitrary dogmas of the instructor. On the whole, it must be acknowledged that the desideratum in the department of elocution ; the work which seizes, generalizes and arranges its facts, develops its principles, and declares its laws ; the work in which the public may universally confide as an exposition of true science ; the work on which the professor, the academical and common-school teacher, can lay their hands, assured that in it they have a safe guide in all that re- lates to reading and speaking ; the work, finally, which shall displace the prevailing inefficient and clumsy method, and banish it forever from our schools ; — such a work is yet to appear ; and when it does appear, it will doubtless bear upon its face the evidence of its mission, and compel assent to its revelations ; and the man who produces it, there can be as little doubt, will be hailed as the benefactor of the young. That the following work, which I have now the honor of submitting to the public, possesses this high and decisive character, I am of course far from believing. Yet, I confess, I am not entirely without hope, (founded on long and patient investigation, unbiased by received theories or precon- ceived opinions, and still more on having tested its utility, during the past two years, in the institution with which I am professionally connected.) that it may prove to be at least the herald of the morning : the day-star to such a sun. If it should, I shall be content ; though merely glimmer- ing for a space, where my successor will pour full-orbed effulgence. It will be seen, on examination, that the leading idea of Mr. Walker is mine ; namely, that the law of delivery must be derived from the struc- ture of the sentence. Mr. Walker, however, either because that idea was not a very clear one, or because he wanted leisure or patience for a wide, comprehensive and exact induction, satisfied himself, as I have already observed, with an extremely imperfect development of it. What he left undone, I have attempted to do : to give a complete enumeration of the dif- ferent sentences in the English language, and a description of their distinctive peculiarities of structure. This part of my work, which forms its base, is comprised in chapter fourth. Chapter second, on Punctuation ; chapter third, on Modulation; and chapter sixth, containing the Laws of De- livery, with a long train of examples under each for exercise, are merely derivations from chapter fourth. The chapter on Emphasis, (ch. 5th,) is the result of discovering, that the laws of delivery, derived from structure, are limited to termination and direction : to the former, in declarative, and to the latter, in interrogative sentences. In other words, I found that structure determined the modu- lation at the end of declarative sentences, and of their parts, and the general direction of the voice, through interrogative; but not the modula- tion of the intermediate portions. This I subsequently traced to the nature, position and influence of emphasis ; my discussion of which, the fruit of PREFACE. 9 laborious and protracted examination, will be deemed, I trust, satisfactory : few subjects have been treated hitherto with less precision : why, it would be difficult to explain. Having now made the student thoroughly acquainted with every va- riety of sentential structure, and the laws of delivery as derived from structure and emphasis combined, I introduce him, in chapter seventh, to the common reading-book ; where he is mainly left to apply for himself, the information obtained from the previous portions of the work. As a reading-book, I think it will be found inferior to none in use. In some re- spects, it is peculiar. The selections comprise sentences of every variety of construction, and in every degree of expansion, both in prose and verse With most of the reading-books in use this is not the case. I have intro- duced colloquial pieces, as well as the more sustained composition of books ; and also several other species of reading, not usually met with in school-books : such as epigrams, anecdotes, preambles and resolutions of deliberative assemblies, advertisements, legal notices, letters, &c, &c. These are all written to be read, and I cannot perceive why we should not learn to read them ; but I have inserted them more particularly, to show that the construction of sentences is the same in every species of composition ; and that these sentences are subject to the same laws of delivery, wherever found : whether in low life, or high life ; in conversa- tion or in writing ; and in one kind of writing as well as in another ; in prose or verse. The chapter on Pronunciation, the latest written and perhaps the least studied of the series, though occupying the first place, is introduced not so much on account of its value, as to mark my sense of the importance of the subject. Distinct, easy, accurate utterance of elementary sounds, syllables, and words, is a fundamental and indispensable quality of good reading and speaking ; and yet how sadly is it neglected, beyond a few unmeaning and inefficient common-places, by a majority of the teachers of the present day ! However, better habits are forming. There are a few instructors certainly who seem, in this respect, apprized of their responsibility ; and we may reasonably hope that the time is not distant, when the elements of the English language will be expressed with Attic elegance. In bringing these prefatory observations to a close, it may be proper for me to say, that, although I have endeavored to confirm every position taken in the following work, by a sufficient number of examples, or where examples were inadmissible, which is seldom the case, with sufficient reasons, it may appear notwithstanding, that I have sometimes spoken unadvisedly : if so, I trust that I have, at the same time, placed at the dis- posal of the reader, all that can be requisite for my correction. It may appear also, after more extended and searching examination, that some things I have advanced need additions, abridgment or modification. As I do not profess to have produced a perfect work, but merely to have laid the foundations for one, I hope such deficiencies may be regarded with some degree of indulgence. I should state that what may be deemed one of these, my silence on the subject of gesture, is the result of design : my plan, in the present work, limiting me to those " elements" which are com- mon to " Reading and Oratory." Something I wished to say, before concluding, on the bearing of what 10 PREFACE. I have advanced, if acknowledged to be just, on the art of composition : something on its relation to the general subject of style : something also on its application to elementary instruction in other languages, both ancient and modern ; soon, probably, to be tested by one of the most finished classical scholars in the country ; but having already extended my observa- tions to an unusual length, I reluctantly suppress what I might add on these points, and submit my work without further ceremony to the judg- ment of an intelligent and candid public: being very sure that, if it possesses value, it will receive proportionate approbation ; and that it can fail to be approved only because, in the opinion of discerning and just men less interested than myself, it fails to deserve it. Hamilton College, Sept. 1st, 1845. CHAPTER I. PRONUNCIATION. Pronunciation anciently included the whole of delivery. By modern usage, it is limited to the enunciation of single words.* It comprehends articulation and accent. SEC. I. ARTICULATION. I. Articulation, primarily, signifies the junction which takes place in the organs of speech when a sound is interrupted and thus separated from other sounds ; and, secondarily, by an easy transition from cause to effect, the distinct utterance of the vari- ous vocal sounds, represented by letters, diphthongs, triphthongs, syllables and words. II. By distinct utterance is to be understood, 1. The expression of all the sounds which enter into the pronun- ciation of a word. The fault opposed to this, the suppression of essential sounds, is one of common oc- currence. Thus, h is often dropped in the pronunciation of where, which, what, and their derivatives: of shrill, shriek, shrunk, humble, and many others. iVis often dropped from government ; pronounced as if written goverment : er from governor, and u, from regular ; as if written govnor, reglar. 2. The exact expression of the sounds which enter into the pro- nunciation of a word. It is not sufficient, for example, that a should have any one of its sounds, but that specific sound which usage ascribes to it in a given position ; as in mane, man, mat. Bad articulation in this respect will leave the hearer in doubt as to the particular word used, or suggest one different from that used ; and the result will be either a perplexed or perverted meaning. 3. The separate and complete expression of sounds, whether of letters, syllables, or entire words. f * Dividitur igitur pronunciatio in vocis figuram, et corporis motum— Rhet. ad Herenn. 1. iii., ch. 2. Pronunciatio a plerisque actio dicitur ; sed prius nomen a voce, sequens a gestu videtur accipere. — Quinctil. 1. xi., 3. Est enim actio quasi corporis qusedam eloquentia, cum constet voce atque motu. — Cic. Orat. 17. Pronunciation, in the modern acceptation of the term, is limited to the mode of enouncing certain words and syllables.— Austin. Chiron. t A good articulation consists in giving every letter in a syllable its due proportion of sound, according to the most approved custom of pronouncing it ; and in making such a distinction between the syllables of which words are composed, that the ear shall, with- out difficulty, acknowledge their number, and perceive at once to which syllable each letter belongs. Where these points are not observed, the articulation is proportionally defective.— Sheridan. 12 PRONUNCIATION. Intermingling sounds is the fault here. Thus, tne following sentence, He understands and obeys, would be read or spoken by many, as if written, He understan-zan-dobeys. It cannot be too often, or too earnestly impressed on the minds of instructors and students, that in reading or speaking, the sound of every letter which is not mute, of every syllable, and of every word, should be accurately and distinctly uttered before another is heard. Unless this be done, the delivery will not be intelligible : much less distinguished by that force and grace, to which good articulation contributes in so great a degree. III. To acquire an articulation which shall be at once accurate and tasteful, it is necessary, 1. To get an exact knowledge of the elementary sounds of the language ; 2. To learn the appropriate place of each of these sounds, as de- termined by usage, in syllables and words ; and, 3. To apply this knowledge, constantly, in conversation, reading and speaking, with a view to correct every deviation from propriety which we may detect in expressing them. Most writers on elocution give exercises for the improvement of articulation ; but manifestly, from the nature of the case, with little benefit to the student. A good articulation is not to be acquired in a day, nor from a few lessons. Practice should begin with the spelling-book, and continue through the whole course of education ; and even then, there will remain room for improvement. IV. The elementary sounds of language are represented by vowels, diphthongs, triphthongs and consonants. In describing these elementary sounds on succeeding pages, I have in a few instances differed from received opinions. I have enumerated some sounds as regular, which are treated by others, apparently for no valid reason, as irregular ; I have adopted the middle a sound of Perry, and have added a corresponding short sound, though found only in unaccented syllables ; I have denominated the vowel sounds succeeding a, when identical, as they often are, with those of a, as the alphabetical, middle, flat, or broad a sound of e, i, -| tyrant, multiply, thyme. " e - Us heard in J fanc ^ P Mloso P h y> hol 7> ™y 6. Y, when a vowel, has four sounds. n__ 3. " e short, f "1 lyric, hypocrite, pyramid, system. 4. Middle a short, J (_ myrtle, martyr. REMARKS. I. Alphabetical i. Y has this sound at the end of an accented syllable ; as in my, tyrant. II. Alphabetical e. It has this sound generally when in unaccented syl- 2* 18 PRONUNCIATION. lables ; as in baby, fancy, muddy, angry, balmy, many, philosophy, happy, phrensy, &c. Exceptions. These are very numerous; as in all words ending in fy ; as justify ; and others ; as multiply, occupy, butterfly, prophesy, gyration, &c. III. Alphabetical e short and middle a short. These sounds, as the exam- ples in the table prove, occur in the same circumstances. Practice must enable us to distinguish them. 7. W, as a vowel, has no independent sound. It becomes vocal only in conjunction with another vowel with which it forms a diph- thong ; as in blow, cow, howl, scowl. VII. A diphthong is the union of two vowels in one articulation ; as ou in sour : a triphthong is the union of three vowels in one articulation ; as eau in beau. Diphthongs are divided into proper and improper, or digraphs. In the first, the vowels blend and form one sound ; as au in caught : in the second, one of the vowels only is vocal ; as ea in beat, oa in coat, and eo in leopard. I proceed to enumerate and describe them. 1. Aa, ae, ai, au, aw, ay. 1. Aa has two sounds. 1. Of alphabetical a, [ ., _, . ( Aaron. 2. " flat a short, j \ Balaam, Canaan, Isaac. 2. Ae has one sound: viz., of alphabetical e; as heard in JEneas, Caesar. 3. Ai has three sounds. 1. Of alphabetical a, ) ( ail, bail, fail. 2. " " a short, > as heard in 1 said, again, fountain. 3. " flat a short, ) ( plaid, raillery. In Britain, certain, fountain, and other words of the same termination, ai is pro- nounced by Walker and others like i in tin ; but for what reason is not obvious ; and as for usage, the obscure sound of e, as in chicken and kitchen, is as often heard as any other, among polished speakers ; as it is unquestionably the legitimate short sound of ai in ail, bail ; which is nothing more than a representative of alphabetical a. 4. Au has four sounds. 1. Of flat a short, 2. " broad a lono\ o cc as heard in< break, great, meadow, thread, bear, tear, earth, dearth, earl, heart, hearken. l beaver, appear. ) as heard j beau, portmanteau. ) in ( beauty, and its compounds. heard as heard in o short, _ as heard in beet, creep, sweep, been, breeches. deign, heinous, veil, heifer, leisure, nonpareil, heir, their, deceit, receive, seize, foreign, forfeit, surfeit, height, sleight. leopard, jeopardy, people, yeoman. _ surgeon, dungeon. 6. Eou, when a triphthong, has but one sound : viz., of alpha- betical o short ; as in righteous, advantageous, gorgeous, outra- geous, &c. Y. Eu has uniformly the sound of alphabetical u ; as in deuce, deuteronomy, feud, grandeur. It is often erroneously pronounced like oo. 8. Ew has two sounds. 1. Of alphabetical o long, ) ag heard b < shew, sew. 2. " " u, ) ( crew, dew, mew. Like eu, it is often erroneously pronounced oo. 9. Ey has three sounds. 1. Of alphabetical a long, ) ( bey, prey. 2. « " e long, >• as heard in 1 key, ley, alley. 8. « " i, ) (eje. 20 PRONUNCIATION. 3. la, ie, ieu, iew, io, iou. 1. la, when a diphthong, has the sound of alphabetical e short ; as in marriage, carriage. 2. Ie, when a diphthong, has four sounds. ► as heard in Of alphabetical a short, " " e long, " " e short, " " i, 3. Ieu has the sound of alphabetical purlieu. 4. lew has also the sound of alphabetical u e 5. Io, when a diphthong, has the alphabetical o short sound of u ; as in marchioness, cushion, conversion, devotion, question, friend, chief, grief, sieve, species, die, lie, pie. u : as in lieu, adieu, as in view, review. 6. Iou, when a triphthong, has the sound of alphabetical o short ; as in precious, vexatious. It is often incorrectly pro- nounced after rf as a triphthong; as in tedious, spoken as if written te-je-ous or te-jus. 4. Oa, oe, oeu, oi, oo, ou, ow, oy. 1. Oa has two sounds. 1. Of broad a long, as heard in as heard in alphabetical o long, 2. Oe has five sounds. Of alphabetical a short, " " e long, " " o long, " " o short, " muffled o long, 3. Oeu has the sound of muffled o long 4. Oi has six sounds. Of middle a short, " broad a and of al- phabetical e long " alphabetical e long, " " e short, i, " w and broad a long, 5. Oo has four sounds. broad, groat, boat, loaf, road. cecumenic, foetid, foetus, ceiliad. doe, foe, toe, hoe. does, canoe, shoe. as in manoeuvre. avoirdupois, boil, toil. ► as heard in-j chamois, turcois. connoisseur, tortoise, choir. _ devoir, reservoir. Of alphabetical o long, " " o short, "■ muffled o long, " " o short, as heard in- door, floor, blood, flood, fool, moon, rood. _ hood, foot, wool, root PRONUNCIATION. 21 bound, doubt, cloud, hour, cough, brought, thought, mourn, pour, though, enough, journey, tough, soup, surtout, through, your, could, should, would. 6. Ou has six sounds. I* 2. Of broad a long, 3. " alphabetical o long, 4. " " o short, 5. " muffled o long, 6. " " o short, Y. Ow has three sounds. 1. ) ( cow, vow, brown. 2. Of broad a short, >• as heard in < knowledge. 3. " alphabetical o long, ) ( blow, blown. 8. Oy has only one sound ; viz., that of broad a and alphabet- ical e long ; as in cloy, boy. 5. Ua, ue, ui, uo, uoy, uy. 1. Ua has three sounds. 1. Of w and alph. a long, 2. " flat a long, 3. " alphabetical e short, 2. Ue has four sounds. Of w and alph. a short, " " alphabetical a short, " middle a short, " alphabetical u, ( assuage, persuade, as heard in 1 guard, piquant. ( victuals, victualer. as heard in quench, conquest, coquet, guest, conquer, guerdon. L ague, cue, hue, virtue. It is sometimes mute ; as in antique, dialogue, &c. 3. Ui has four sounds. Of w and alph. e short, " alphabetical e short, i, " " u, 4. Uo has two sounds. Of as heard in- languid, vanquish, guilt, guinea, guide, disguise. _ juice, pursuit. and alph. o long, ) ag heard . ( quote, quotation, and alph. o short, ) ( quoth. long; 5. Uoy has one sound ; viz., of to and broad a and or of w and oi in boil. It occurs only in one word : buoy. 6. Uy has three sounds. 1. Of w and alph. e long, ) ( obloquy, colloquy. 2. " alphabetical e long, > as heard in •< plaguy, roguy. alphabetical i, ) ( buy, and its derivatives. 3. This sound has no representative. 22 PRONUNCIATION. © a a 42 © a 4-> 1 © f a 42 CO i © M © © © m Q •a 2 © © ©" bo B3 '6 S3 >> 3 © "© © © [3 fc >>§ §■ © s 42 13 CU © £> © "E 9 *© © 42 a 1 3 O *-> C3 © a- - o So 5 e3 © O T3 © © "© © a a *© bD © 42 © o ^-2 . © S3 O 42 ^ 3 a bjo 42 O 2 ©" © 42 .bJO '© 42 a S3 CO 3 3 o K W Q Q fill 42 '© « K £o-? © £* ri 13 42 3 42 °* o ^43 .53 - c « J) 2 " S T3 a fcjD s 42 S3 SS . s3 bJD"3 "S-g 3 S3 -j_T ~ S3 n © © * S3 t+H © .. © B 'C © '" CO .9 a a © 3 S3 © 42 "B ° S 3 O © 42 .bo 'C 3 O © g ^ a, 3 c CO "0 © 2 3 'a 42 © 03 © 3 •8 Is »4 «2 ©-§ s § '3 3 o s 'a O O g '3 3 © 53 .2" a O © 3 O © © « © '0 .2" 3 O S3 © .2 ~.2 "© .» © - £ s S3 © - r3 © *© .2 *3 "0 O © 3 © 3 .2 H H © •> _ o3 „'S © © CO e3 s3 »"» _ © © »> o 1 CO © 08 "© © © .2" © © 3 i © 3 © 3 O © 3 .JT ^ p S3 © pA a © fe S3 .4?.-T a co a a © © O O „ s3 S3 .4? ed ^ ^ ^ sT ~ S3 S3 S3 ^ ^ £ a © a © CO O of >» ► B2 03 © © © © S3 O O ••* ■« £ S3 3 3 ■ A3 aajLNasaiuaH O © >» 5 o* i3 'S bo e. © ;a © 42 3 "s3 +j _ 42 <2"o3 £ © a © 42 © © a S © a 5 © 1 > © e 1 Pi 3 O «! N 1 sv ^ «. .. - w - 1-*' O 2 3 2 & 1— 1 O O "- 1 -< 2 3 S TOW "* - * * *« "S "£ t-i >-i 'cS 5j *S3 "eS n »H "rt © o © o o O .2 © O _© • - 42 42 43 42 0Q CO © 42" . m © © i •s "© 42 © 42 42 42 t3 42 03 =5 T3 S3 «3 ei 1 03 -^ 2 ^J S3 42 42 42 42 o^s :s s cd SOS C« O, P4 a a, ? £ Pn m 3 < ^ § < PRONUNCIATION. 23 IX. All the letters of the alphabet, not hitherto described, are called consonants : so called, because some of them cannot be uttered at all, and the remainder but in part, independently of the vowels. They are as follows : b, c, d, f g, h, i, j, k, I, m, n, p, q, r, s, t, v, w, x, y, z ; to which must be added th, ch, sh, zh, wh, ng : being plainly elementary sounds, and as such belonging to the alphabet, though not formally included in it. X. Consonants may be divided into two classes : real consonants, and substitutes. By a real consonant, is meant that which has a peculiar and determinate sound of its own, though it may assume that of another letter or a combination of letters ; and by a substitute, one which has no peculiar and determinate sound of its own, but uni- formly represents that of some other letter or combination of letters. XI. The real consonants are, b, d, f, g, h, j, k, I, m, n, p, r, s, t, v, w, x, y, z, ch, sh, th, wh, ng. Real consonants are either unchangeable or changeable. Un- changeable consonants are those which uniformly have the same sound : changeable, those which, besides having their peculiar sounds, in certain positions assume other sounds. A consonant is not changeable because, in one or two instances, it may assume another sound ; (which may be merely a vicious effect of custom ;) but only when it assumes another sound, in the same position, in all words, or generally ; and hence when this assumption can be traced to a general law. 1. The unchangeable are, b, f, h, j, k, I, m, p, r, v, w, y, sh, th, wh. 1. B. Its sound is heard in battle, rebel, bibber, cub. After m, (except in accumb, succumb, rhomb,) and before t, in the same syllable, it is silent ; as in lamb, bomb, thumb, debtor, doubt, subtle. 2. F. F\$> heard in fancy, muffin. In of, but not in its com- pounds, it has the sound of v. 3. H. This letter is merely a strong breathing, which may be heard in hat, horse, hedge. At the beginning of the words, heir, heiress, herb, herbage, honest, honesty, honor, honorable, hour, after r, as in rhomb, rhetoric, and at the end of a word preceded by a vowel, as in ah, oh, it is silent. In many words it is suppressed where it should be heard ; as in hostler, humble, exhale, exhibit, exhort, exhaust, exhilarate, &c. 4. J. The sound of j is heard in James, jelly. It has the sound of y in hallelujah. 21 PRONUNCIATION. 5. K. The sound of k is heard in keep, skirt, murky. Before n, it is mute ; as in knife, knell, knocker, knew. 6. L. This letter has a soft liquid sound ; as in sorrel, "bil- low, love. It is often silent before d, f k, m, and v ; as in could, should, would, calf, half, talk, balm, salve. I. M. M\% heard in man, deem, murmur, monumental. In comptroller it has the sound of n ; and in mnemonic, it is silent. 8. P. The sound of p is heard in pay, lip, puppy. It is silent before n, between m and t, and before s and t at the be- ginning of words ; as in pneumatics, tempt, ptisan, psalm ; and also in the words, corps, raspberry, receipt. 9. JR. The sound of this letter is heard in rage, brimstone, hurra. 10. V. The sound of v is heard in vain, levity, ovation, re- lieve. It is silent in sevennight. II. W. IF" is heard in want, will, word, ween, reward. In answer, sword, and before r, as in wrap, wreck, wrong, it is silent. 12. Y. The sound of y is heard in yonder, &c. 13. Sh. The peculiar sound of sh is heard in shine, short, refreshment, relish. 14. Th. This combination has two sounds: the one sharp, as in think, with ; the other flat, as in them, clothe. The h is silent in asthenic, asthma, isthmus, phthisic, phthisical, Thomas, Thames, thyme. 15. Wh. This sound is heard in which, what, when, where, tohale, &c. The w is sometimes silent ; as in whole, who, whose, whom, whoop. 2. The changeable consonants are d, g, n, s, t, x, z, ch, ng. 1. D. The peculiar sound of d is heard in dead, meddle, ruddy. It assumes the sound of t in the termination ed of the past tense, when immediately preceded by c, f k, p, s, x, ch, sh, or q ; as in faced, stuffed, cracked, tripped, vexed, vouched, flashed, piqued. In handsome, stadtholder, and Wednesday, it is silent. The sound of j, which Walker assigns to this letter after the accent and followed by ia, ie, u alph., o and eou, as in radiance, obedience, mediocrity, arduous, hideous, &c, as if written rajiance, obejience, mejiocrity, arjuous, hijeous, is unwarranted, absurd and mis- chievous. Even in soldier, in which d is generally allowed to have the sound of j, it may be doubted whether d loses its proper sound. It is rather partially blended, in the rapidity of articulation, with the y sound of the i which follows it. 2. G. The peculiar sound of g, (usually called its hard sound,) is heard at the end of words, and before a, o, u, I, r ; as in bag, log, rug ; game, gone, gull, glory, grandeur. It assumes the sound of j, (usually called its soft sound,) before e, i, and y ; as in gem, giant, ginger, Egypt, gyration, badge> edge, &c. Ex- PRONUNCIATION. 25 ceptions are numerous ; as in get, finger, gilt, gimblet, girl, give, giddy, geld, girt, girth, -t H CO eq & Q < to < to O m to O O o g 3 w o H K Eh Ph O c to >* CO c* © fafl 3 o o -a .3 „ 3 .9 U ii 3 ED a 3 — © cr- 3 3 75 C o O "3 o Ml co 3-9 W Eh Eh O 71 3 -3 © © eS 'o s CX, ED © o o o 3 J3 o a rsuade, ilosoph nquet, O o T3 ex, ex, ex, X! " P NI SV CO 44 j3 GO GO N e*H 'f» fc *~ X VOJ ainxusfins V 5 ,i O £ - P £0 t3 +J 3 o 42 © © © 42 to "5 © bjO H3 o CO ►9 CO BO fcJD *4 OS b£ 3 "3 3 CO 3 3 . s 2 © © H © © > © bJO 'a 3 4= 60 CO CD (-, CO O "3 partial questio Xenop examp 6 s- 3 N 3 * 1 o © 3 J3 bD 3 g 3 NI S V J « < fcJD .3 -3 43 43 « JS d ** •t-3 n CO N to O N bD N "3 44 3 CO N-»-V-»/ JO aNiios 3HJ. sawnssv to O bB 3 83 © O he O -3 3 © © 3 e£ S -2 o 3 © -3 3 "bJD CO T3 bD a S3 CO -M © O £ O NI S V O Q O fc OQ H X N 42 © fee 3 w •-* ci © l-J, « H 45 3 o j2 p 43 1 © 1 43 -~ CO © CO ex, CD 44 © > c man, deem, pay, lip. rage, brine, vain, levity. | "© © o 2 >> Id 3 3 43 j i H o NI sv n h a HS M J g P* tf > &f ^ -s 5-1 PRONUNCIATION. 29 SEC. II. ACCENT. Accent, in general, is that greater stress which is laid on one syllable of a word in comparison with another. It is employed to promote ease of articulation, to distinguish different parts of speech haying the same form, and to express opposition of thought. Hence, as it subserves any one of these ends, it may be denomi- nated articulator?/, discriminative, or rhetorical. 1. Articulator?/ Accent. Articulatory accent is either primary or secondary : the first, distinguished from the last, by appearing at an earlier stage in the formation of words, by being indispensable to all words of more than one syllable, and by being produced by a more forcible utter- ance. A word never has the secondary accent until it contains three or more syllables ; and it may have three, four, and even five syllables, without having the secondary accent in a degree to attract notice ; as in relative, communicative. The greater force of the primary may be observed in such words as estimated, recom- mendation, heterogeneous. But few general rules can be given to determine the place of the accent. Many that are prescribed as such, have exceptions as numerous as the words vfhich they embrace. The limited number subjoined, are mainly drawn from Webster. 1. Monosyllables, though they may be pronouced with force, are necessarily without accent : comparison of one syllable with another being involved in the very nature of accent. 2. Dissyllables submit to no general rule of accentuation whatever ; as may be readily ascertained by testing those rules which Walker, Murray and others apply to this class of words. 3. Trissyllables, derived from dissyllables, usually retain the accent of their primi- tives ; as in poet, poetess ; pleasant, pleasantly ; gracious, graciously ; relate, related ; polite, politely, politest. 4. Words of four syllables also, derived from dissyllables, generally retain the accent of their primitives ; as in collectible from collect ; serviceable from service ; virtuously from virtue ; dictionary from diction ; fancifulness from fancy. 5. In all cases, the preterit and participles of verbs retain the accents of the verbs. 6. Words ending in tion, sion, tian, cious. tious, cial, tial, Hate, tient, cient, have the accent on the syllable preceding that termination ; as motion, aversion, christian, avaricious, ad- ventitious, commercial, geometrician, substantial, negotiate, patient, ancient. ">. Words of more than two syllables, ending in ty, have, for the most part, the accent on the antepenult ; as entity, liberty, gratuity, propriety, prosperity, insensibility. 8. Trissyllables ending in ment, for the most part, have the accent on the first sylla- ble ; as complement, detriment ; but to this rule there are many exceptions, and particu- larly nouns formed from verbs ; as amendment, commandment. Words ending with cracy, fluous, ferous, fluent, gonal, gony, machy, loquy, mathy. meter, nomy, ogy, pathy, phony, parous, scopy, strophe, vomous, tomy, raphy, have the accent on the antepenultimate syllable ; as democracy, superfluous, odoriferous, mellifluent, diagonal, cos- mogony, logomachy, obloquy, polymathy, barometer, economy, theology, apathy, euphony, ovip- arous, aeroscopy, apostrophe, ignivomous, duatomy, Such is a brief statement of the rules of accentuation which possess any value. 2. Discriminative Accent. This, as I have already observed, is employed to distinguish different parts of speech having the same form : principally nouns 3* 30 PRONUNCIATION. and verbs, but in a few instances nouns and adjectives ; as in the following list, which I obtain from Mr. Walker. ab'ject abject' con'fine confine' absent absent conflict ronflict abstract abstract conserve conserve accent accent consort consort affix affix contest contest augment augment contrast contrast bombard bombard converse converse cement cement convert convert ' colleague colleague descant descant collect collect digest digest compact compact essay essay compound compound export export compress compress extract extract concert concert exile exile concrete concrete ferment ferment conduct conduct frequent frequent im'port incense insult object perfume prefix premise presage present produce project , protfcst rebel refuse subject survey import'' incense insult object perfume prefix premise presage present produce project protest rebel refuse subject survey 3. Rhetorical Accent. This is a temporary accent, or, perhaps more properly speaking, the customary accent transferred from its place to another syllable, to express opposition of thought. Examples. 1. He must mcrease, but I must decrease. 2. What fellowship hath righteousness with unrighteousness ? 3. Consider well what you have done, and what you have left zmdone. 4. This corruptible must put on ^corruption ; and this mor- tal must put on immortality. 5. The difference in this case, is no less than betwixt decency and indecency : betwixt religion and zVreligion. 6. In the suitableness or ^^suitableness, the proportion or disproportion of the affection to the object which excites it, con- sists the propriety or impropriety of the consequent action. 7. Now that he ascended, what is it but that he also descend- ed first into the lower parts of the earth ? He that descended, is the same also that ascended up far above all heavens, that he might fill all things. PUNCTUATION 3] CHAPTER II. PUNCTUATION. What I have to say, under this head, rests on the following propositions : 1. That our language comprises a limited number of sentences, having each a peculiar and uniform construction by which they may be always and easily recognised : 2. That all sentences of the same construction, should, in strict propriety, be punctuated, without regard to their brevity or length, in the same manner : 3. That the punctuation should always coincide with the deliv- ery ; so that the one may be a guide to the other ; or, rather, so that the construction of a sentence may determine the punctuation and the delivery at the same time : 4. That every departure from the proper punctuation, by which the latter is brought in conflict with the delivery, should be sys- tematic ; that is to say, should be for reasons which apply to all cases of the same kind ; so that the design of the change in punc- tuation may be, in every case, obvious, and the proper delivery retained notwithstanding. In the remarks which follow, I purposely refrain from entering on the details of punctua- tion : nothing more being necessary at present, than the general rules which determine the proper U3e of the different pauses, and so prepare the way to understand the classification and description of sentences on succeeding pages. Their special application, I deem it best to re- Berve until the subject of structure shall be under consideration. Pauses are employed for three purposes : 1. To mark divisions of sense; 2. To indicate the nature of the sentence ; and 3. To denote unusual construction or significance. SEC. I. PAUSES WHICH MARK DIVISIONS OF SENSE. These are, 1. The comma, "j 2. " semicolon, . | 3. " colon, ^written thus 4. " period, 5. " double period, 32 PUNCTUATIOl I. THE COMMA. The comma is properly employed, only, in separating the members of a sentence, making imperfect sense until the end is reached ; or containing only one proposition. As a pause, it suspends the voice, in unimpassioned reading or speaking, sufficiently long to draw breath : under the influence of emotion, its time is indefinite. Note I. By imperfect sense, I mean sense imperfect according to the author ; for a sentence may be so constructed that the first half or the first quarter of it, if considered apart from what follows, would of itself make perfect sense, and consequently demand, in conformity to the rule, some pause different from the comma ; but, if considered with reference to the author's intention, the sense is imperfect, until what follows, be sub- joined. Observe this sentence : " We came to our journey's end, at last, with no small difficulty, after much fatigue, through deep roads, and bad weather." Take any part of this sentence terminating with a comma, and, if you look no farther than that part, you will have perfect sense, but not the perfect sense of the author : what follows the comma being absolutely necessary to the completeness of his thought ; as much so, as if the sentence were written thus : " At last, after much fatigue, through deep roads and bad weather, we came, with no small difficulty, to our journey's end." This is unquestionably a better construction than the other, but the parts are not more closely allied, nor more indispensable to the completeness of the author's thought than before. What then is the difference between the two forms of construction ? None with regard to the author, and none, consequently, with regard to the use of the comma. The dif- ference between them respects the hearer or reader exclusively ; and that difference is this : the first at no point raises an expectation of any thing to follow ; the second excite3 and keeps up such an expectation until the close of the sentence is reached. Note II. That the sense is imperfect according to the author, may be known by several circumstances. It is imperfect 1. When a subject, or nominative case, with its adjuncts, governs no verb ; as, " John, who was with me." 2. When, if a period should be inserted at a given point, (as at either of the divisions in the following sentences,) verbs and nouns would be left without government, ad- verbs have nothing to qualify, and adjectives have no agreement ; as " He invaded the country | fought three battles | and took twelve cities. They built the house with an auger | a saw | and a hammer. God made man | erect | free ] intelligent | immortal. He was heard painfully | and impatiently." The part of the sentence, succeeding the period at any of the points indicated by the perpendicular mark, would be unintelligible. 3. When a preposition with its government, would express no relation ; as in note 1st: We came | to our journey's end | at last | with no small difficulty | sc. 4. When the first part of a sentence implies the remainder : having a word in it which raises an expectation of another about to follow ; as, as — so, when — then, where — there, if— then, in examples 9, 10, 11, and 12 of proper use below. Note III. The sentence or proposition may be expressed declaratively or interroga- tively ; as, " Did we not come, at last, to our journey's end, with no small difficul- ty, sc. sc. ?" Note IV. By a proposition, it may be sufficient to say here, is meant that assemblage of words, or members, which is necessary to a complete thought : in other words, a proposition is a series of words expressing a complete thought. (See Class.) Note V. When I say, the comma as a pause suspends the voice, &c. &c, I mean to intimate that the comma does not necessarily represent a pause, but simply designates the place where, if necessary, a pause may be made : where the relation of the words is not so close, but that, if necessary, they can be separated long enough to take breath, oi to produce some rhetorical effect, without injury to the sense. The pause should, if possiole, be limited to those commas which mark principal or leading divisions of im- perfect sense ; inasmuch as its frequent repetition, together with the peculiar inflexion connected with it, tends to monotony.* * Sunt aliquando et respiratione quaedam moras etiam in periodis ; ut in ilia, in ccetu vero populi Romani, negotium publicum gerens, magister equitum marked thus : 3. The waving slide, 4. The double slide, 1. The upward slide carries the voice upward through a succes- sion of tones, and suspends it at the highest. (See Plate, fig. 3.) Examples. Did Paul make a worse preacher for being brought up at the feet of Gamaliel ? Does God uniformly work in one way ? Has he never employed talents usefully ? 2. The downward slide reverses the upward : carrying the voice downward through a succession of tones, and suspending it at the lowest. (See Plate, fig. 4.) Examples. Who possessed more advantages or more eloquence than the apostle whose words are alluded to in the objection ? To whom do we owe it, under an all wise Providence, that this nation so miraculously born, is now contributing with such effect to the welfare of the human family, by aiding the march of mental and moral improvement, and giving an example to the nations of the earth ? 3. The waving slide does not differ essentially from a very full development of the two emphatic sweeps : the voice rising above the level of the sentence from the beginning, to descend upon the emphatic word, pass below the level of the sentence, and return to it or above it at the end. [See Plate, fig. 2, e. f.) Examples. You will ride to town to-day f You will ride to town to-day f You will ride to town to-day f You will ride to town to-day f 4. The double slide carries the voice upward, as in the first slide, and then downward, as in the second. The disjunctive con- junction or, which is always present in questions of this kind, forms 56 MODULATION. the point at which the one ends, and the other begins. (See Plate, fig. 5, a, b, c.) Examples. Barabbas, or Jesus 9 Is it lawful to give tribute unto Csssar, or not 9 Shall we call him a patriot, or shall we stigmatize him as a traitor 9 4. THE CLOSES. J. substitute this word for cadences, because the latter is not sufficiently general, and suggests that sentences terminate like a piece of music. This indeed was the theory of Walker, a theory in an unfortunate moment endorsed by Porter ; but it is a theory, notwithstanding, which has no foundation in facts : sentences terminate in a variety of ways ; and even the same sentence has not always the same close. 1. The partial close, ) marked tlms . j ( x ) 2. The perfect close, j ' ( (.) 1. The partial close* is a descent or fall of the voice at the end of one of the parts of a compound sentence to the key, or to a point near the key, preparatory to the perfect close. It is repre- sented by the grave accent of the Greeks. 2. The perfect close is a descent or fall of the voice, at the end of a sentence, quite down to the key or to a point below it. It is represented by the period. Examples of both in connection. The faults opposed to the sublime are chiefly two v : the frigid and the bombast. Before closing this, I wish to make one observation : I shall make it once for all. For instance : if I am speaking of virtue, in the course of ordi- nary conversation, I refer the word to no sex or gender ; I say, "Virtue is its own reward^;" or, "It is the law of nature." Among similes, faulty through too great obviousness of the likeness, we must likewise rank those which are taken from ob- jects become trite and familiar in poetical language. Such is the simile of a hero to a lion v ; of a person in sorrow to a flower drooping its head x ; of a violent passion to a tempest' ; of chastity to snow v ; of virtue to the sun or stars v ; and many others of the same kind. The closes are incidents exclusively of declarative sentences; (see Classification, Definition of a Decl. Sent. ;) and they have their characteristic delivery, only, at the end of such sen- tences or the parts of such sentences, when the last word is under emphasis ; which is com- * This is the falling inflexion of other writers on elocution. It is treated by them as the reverse of the rising inflexion or bend. If this were just, the voice ought simply to turn down, as in the bend it turns up ; whereas it falls down, and is always preparatory to perfect MODULATION. 57 monly tho case. (Sec Emphasis, Sect. II. iv.) When the emphatic word is not the last, the Characteristic delivery of the closes is modified. (See Emphasis, Sect. II. v. vi.) 1 have observed some faults in the delivery of the closes which the student Bhould correct, if subject to them, or any one of them, at any cost of time and labor. 1. The sentence is sometimes terminated with a continuation of voice On the usual level, Instead of a fall. This is not often the case, yet it occurs. -2. When the voice falls at the end, the fall is equivocal, not decisive : the voice turns down- ward, but as if with the design of rising again. 3. Occasionally I have met with the habit of uniformly placing strong emphasis on the Senultimate or antepenultimate word of a sentence, and then rushing from that point, as if own a declivity to the end of the sentence. 4. I have frequently met with the habit of falling unnaturally deep : especially from a high, artiiicial key. The proper delivery may be acquired by answering yes and no, to definite interrogative sentences ; and then substitute the equivalent of the yes or no, and deliver the last word in precisely the same manner : being careful to deliver the whole sentence either on a level or rising to the last word. E. g. Will you ride to town to-day 1 Yes. Will you ride to town to-day ? I will ride to town to-day. III. FORCE. "When a person, reading or speaking, is requested to read or speak louder, he can, without rising in tone, and simply by a slight additional exertion, so increase the volume of his voice, that any one within a rea- sonable distance, and not deaf, may hear distinctly and with ease. This increase of volume, without change of tone, is an increase of force ; which may be varied by those who have powerful vocal organs, from a whisper to the awful reverberations of thunder. I need scarcely say that the judicious management of force, is a distinct and important addition to that variety which renders good reading and speaking so singularly attractive to all classes of hearers. Some passages, of course, should be delivered with a greater degree of force than others. When these occur, the student must be governed in their delivery by the relative importance of the thought, or the nature of the sentiment or passion expressed. I know of no other rule for the management of force in such cases. In a general view, however, when we have regard to the tenor of an entire discourse, we should never employ a greater degree of force than may be necessary to be easily and distinctly heard ; which may be ascertained without difficulty by observing the movements of the more distant auditors. The reasons for this rule are the following : 1. To speak with more force than is necessary to be distinctly and easily heard by the re- moter part of the audience, is to incur the hazard of speaking too forcibly or loud for those hearers who are near ; which has an unhappy effect. 2. To use a degree of force much greater than that of animated conversation, (and greater than this is scarcely ever necessary in reading and speaking to common audiences.) is what the organs of speech are not accustomed to, and is therefore fatiguing, and not easily sus- tained. 3. The continued use of an unusual degree of force, destroys the flexibility of the voice, and is one of the principal causes of monotony. 4. But the main reason for employing, in the tenor of discourse, no more force than may be requisite for the purpose specified in the rule, is, that the reader or speaker may have a re- serve for use, when the mture of the thought or sentiment or passion expressed in particular {)assages, calls for an increase of volume and power. For such emergencies, he whose de- ivery is uniformly loud and vociferous, i3 never prepared. Additional force will hardly be remarked ; or if it attract observation, the only effect produced will be to augment the dissat- isfaction with w hich the speaker is heard. 68 MODULATION. We should bo carefid not to confound force with vivacity. Force is strength, energy: vi- vacity is life, animation. Force has respect to the bearer: vivacity, to the subject. A certain degree of force is always necessary from the beginning of a discourse to (he end: vivacity, on the other baud, in sonic parts of a discourse, as in an introduction, would bo out of place; and in others, as in passages highly charged with the benevolent aflbctions, (love, sympathy, compassion, &c.,) incompatible with just delivery. Force to the verge "I vocifera- tion, especially if uniform, may be associated with dulness: vivacity, never; and yet there may be great vivacity in speakers who have little force. I think 1 have observed uumeious examples of this. But the most important distinction between them remains to be noticed. Force is under the control of the will ; and is measured and regulated by the judgment : vivacity depends upon the feelings, and their .susceptibility of excitement from the progress of discussion. The one is, therefore, voluntary : the other, involuntary. A speaker can command force at any time : but vivacity, if it comes at all, comes without being summoned or solicited. It appears only, when the speaker begins to be interested in his subject; and as this penetrates and warms and absorbs him, it grows apace, independently both of judgment and volition. The practical bearing of this distinction is obvious. Vivacity, though an essential element of fine elocution, is subject to no rules. All that can be said, is, that if we would have it, we must appreciate and profoundly feel what we read or speak : enter into its spirit : identify our- selves with it : yield ourselves up unreservedly to its influence. When we do this, vivacity will not be wanting. DIRECTIONS FOR EXERCISE ON FORCE. Select a sentence, (as under Key,) and deliver it on a given key with voice just sufficient to be distinctly heard: then increase the quantity, and continue to increase it, until the whole power of the voice is brought into play. When this shall have been done, re- verse the process : ending with a whisper. Observe : the sentence must be delivered without change of key. The same exercise may be repeated on different keys, and should be ; but during the process of increasing or diminishing force, the same key should be firmly held, and the sentence delivered with the same series of tones. The tendency of this exercise, which cannot be too fre- quently repeated, is to strengthen the voice, and give command of it, at the extremes of little force and great. The faults particularly worthy of attention imder the head of force, (apart from uniformly too much or too little, causing a perpetual, monotonous din painful to the ear, on the one hand; or constant and uncomfortable exertion on the part of the audience to hear, on the other,) are two. 1. One of these is the exceedingly vicious habit of beginning every sentence successively with great force, and gradually diminishing, until, by the time the end is reached,. the speaker is scarcely intelligible. Such a delivery is rarely requisite to the .proper utterance of any sen- tence. Almost universally, at least as much force is necessary at the end as at the beginning ; and not seldom more. 2. Another fault is the abrupt employment of force. The speaker is perhaps addressing his audience in a low tone of voice, when suddenly he breaks out with all the force of his lungs : giving them a shock which almost drives them from their seats. This is altogether wrong. Every increase of force should be gradual. It is seldom that men fly suddenly from repose, to the most strenuous exertion. Such violent changes of force are therefore unnatural. Occasions may, indeed, occur on which they are necessary ; but rarely beyond the limits of the drama. IV. RATE. Rate in particular passages, like force, must necessarily vary with the nature of the thought, the sentiment, and the emotion. It should not, however, be so slow that the audience may anticipate what we are about to say, nor so fast that we cease to articulate distinctly. In neither case will we be heard with any satisfaction ; though the second is the greater fault. We may be slow and yet MODULATION. 59 intelligible ; but when a man becomes inarticulate in consequence of the rapidity of his utterance, he entertains his hearers with nothing but " sound and fury." The general rate, which may be retarded or accelerated accord- ing to circumstances, as just now implied, should be as slow as is consistent with commanding and sustaining the attention of the audience. It was a precept given by one of the most distinguished men of his day to Aaron Burr, " speak as slow as you can." This, as I have already hinted, may be carried to an extreme ; but it is one to which speakers seldom pass. The tendency and the temp- tation are in the opposite direction. If I mistake not, the opinion is prevalent in this country, that rapidity of utterance is a marked characteristic of eloquence. In consequence, it is desired and aimed at as an oratorical accomplishment. But this is a serious mistake. In the first place, a lapid speaker, unless he possess extraordinary mental activity, or speaks memoriter, will find his power of thought unable to keep pace with his current of language. His voice will outrun his mind ; and he will consequently speak incoherently and little to the purpose. 2. Experience proves, I think, that a rapid delivery, especially at the beginning of a dis- course, is incompatible with that self-possession, and universal self-command, which are absolutely necessary to produce important oratorical effects. It throws the speaker into a flutter of spirits which, at the same time, confounds memory, confuses thought, and embar- rasses action. 3. Of good elocution, distinct articulation is a fundamental requisite ; and this, in connection with rapid delivery, is very rare. The slow speaker may articulate badly ; but it has seldom been my good fortune to hear a rapid speaker who articulated well. 4. A slow delivery in general, is, I conceive, absolutely necessary, in conformity with what 1 have said above, to enable a reader or speaker to comply with the demands of sentiment and emotion. The rapid speaker cannot increase his rate, and yet the sentiment of a sen- tence or paragraph may demand a veiy considerably accelerated, and even a hurried utter- ance in comparison with the general rate*, in order to give it due expression. For such emer- gencies, the slow speaker is alone prepared ; and they are emergencies which afford both reader and speaker the best opportunities for the highest achievements of the rhetorical art.* DIRECTIONS FOR EXERCISE ON RATE. Select a sentence as before, and deliver it as slow, (without drawling,) as may be possible. Repeat the delivery with a slight increase of rate : continue to repeat and increase the rate, until you shall have reached a rapidity of utterance at which distinct articulation ceases. Having done this, reverse the process and repeat slower and slower. Ability to increase and diminish rate at pleasure, is a veiy im- portant element of good reading and speaking, and can be acquired only by the practice here recommended ; which, as well as the preceding exercises on key and force, contributes to the acquisition of that perfect command of the voice, necessary to express with propriety every variety of thought to be met with in a discourse. * Nee volubilitate nimia confundenda quae dicimus; qua et distinctio perit, et affectus; et nonnunquam etiam verba aliqua sui parte fraudantur. Cui contrarium est vitium nimias tar- ditatis. Nam et difficultatem inveniendi fatetur, et segnitia solvit animos, et in quo est aliquid, temporibus jm tefiiiiiis aquam perdit. — Quinc. b. xi .eh. 3. fiC CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. CHAPTER IV. CLASSIFICATION AND DESCRIPTION OF SENTENCES. A proposition is a series of words expressing a complete thought. e. g. " Omniscience is an attribute of God." "A man who walks ten miles a day, will walk seventy in a week." A sentence contains one proposition, or two or more related propositions. The preceding examples contain each one propo- sition. The following one contains two. " It was the third hour ; and they crucified him." Every sentence in the English language is either simple or compound. 1. A simple sentence is one which contains a single proposition having but one subject and one verb : e. g. Jesus wept. Beauty is admired. Cpesar conquered the Gauls. Note 1. The infinitive mood is not treated in this work as a verb. (See " Course of Reading," Part I. iii. 6.) Note 2. Though a simple sentence can have but one subject and one verb, it by no means follows, that it can have nothing besides. The number of its words may be indefinitely in- creased without changing its simple character. In the third of the examples given, there is not only a subject, and finite verb, but an object: "the Gauls." To this, we may add the time during which, "in a few months," and the time at which, " a little before the beginning of the Christian era." With this we may connect the means : " some thousands of men." We may give Caesar an attribute : " the immortal Caesar." We may qualify the verb : " easily con- quered." We may qualify even that qualification : " very easily." And so on. Comprising ail these additions in one sentence, we have the following: "The immortal Caesar very easily conquered the Gauls in a few months, a little before the beginning of the Christian era, with some thousands of men ;" which is still a simple sentence, because, notwithstanding the addi- tions made to it, it has but one subject and one verb. 2. A compound sentence is one which contains either a single proposition, having two or more subjects or verbs, or two or more propositions, having indifferently one subject and verb, or two or more subjects and verbs connected by conjunctions, adverbs, or rela- tive pronouns, expressed or understood. For the different kinds of connection formed by conjunctions, adverbs and relative pronouns, see " Course of Reading," p. 34, 32, 23 ; and examples of close, compact and loose sentences below. (a.) When a single proposition only is expressed, that proposition is either absolute or conditional. Examples of the absolute. Exercise and temperance strengthen the constitution. The ani- mals turned, looked and ran away. Take off his chains and use CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. 61 him well. The) r rejected with contempt the ceremonious homage, which other sects substituted for the pure worship of the soul. He who is disposed to deny this, cannot have given much attention io the subject. Peace be with you all that are in Christ Jesus. God made man erect, rational, free, immortal. Examples of the conditional. Though he fall, he will rise again. As in Adam all died, so in Christ shall all be made alive. If he give me permission, I will go witli you. When he comes, then you may go. People are happy, because they are good. Obs. 1. The parts of these sentences beginning with though, as, if, when, and because, ex- press respectively the condition of the other parts with which they are connected. Obs. 2. It is obvious that I use the term " conditional" here with a very extensive significa- tion when I indicate by it the peculiar relation which the one part of each of these sentences bears to the other ; but I can think of no better word to express the same meaning ; and if it be understood that I mean by a conditional proposition one that always contains parts thus related, though sometimes not in the strict sense, conditionally, there will be no danger of mistake. (6.) When two or more propositions are connected, these propo- sitions may be either simple or compound, in the sense of the second half of the definition of compound sentences ; i. e. they may be propositions, having either one subject and verb, or two or more subjects or verbs. Examples of the first. It was the third hour ; and they crucified him. This is at best a shallow quality : in objects of eternal moment, it is poisonous to society. Examples of the second. He was a tall and very spare old man : his head, which was covered with a white linen cap, his shrivelled hands, and his voice, were all s iaken under the influence of a palsy ; and a few moments ascertainfd to me, that he was perfectly blind. Note 1. An absolute compound sentence, except when compound by the insertion of a rela- tive clause, (see Note 2. 6, below,) is merely an abbreviated method of giving utterance to several Eimple sentences without the repetition of the same verbs, attributes, objects, &c, by simply stating once what is common to all. e. g. " Exercise strengthens the constitution :" " temperance strengthens the constitution." Strengthens the constitution, being common to both of these simple sentences, its repetition is suppressed, when they are united in a compound structure. e. g. " Exercise and temperance strengthen the constitution." Note 2. When the pupil declares a sentence compound, he should, at the same time, indi- cate the mode in which the compound structure is formed : being governed in doing this by Khat is expressed, not by what is understood. For example, in reply to the question, In what respect is this sentence compound, he will say, It has i. Two or more subjects : e. g. " Exercise and temperance strengthen the constitution ;" or 2. Two or more verbs: e. g. "The animals turned, looked and ran away ;" or 3. Two or more attributes : e. g. " God made man erect, rational, free, immortal ;" " He gave promptly and generously ,•" or 4. Two or more objects : e. g. "He bought a. farm and stock ;" or 5. Two or more adjuncts or prepositional clauses: e.g. "The man of fortune, or of fame, Is not secure in his possession." 6 &Z CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. C. A relative clause: e.g. "Peace be with you all that are in Christ Jesus;" or 7. Correlative clauses : e.g. " VVheu he comes, then you may go ;" or 8. Distinct propositions: e.g. "It was the third hour; and they crucified him." Sometimes several of these different kinds of compound structure may be combined. When this occurs, the pupil should be required to state the fact. Note 3. It should be understood, that while analyzing a compound structure we have re- gard only for the subjects, verbs, attributes, objects and adjuncts, expressed, as in No. 1, 2, 3, 4, 5. We by no means assert that these expressed subjects, verbs, &c. exhaust the elements of the compound structure. There are always, in fact, as many verbs expressed or understood as there are subjects expressed ; and vice versa ; as many subjects and verbs, as attributes ; &c. &c. All sentences, whether simple or compound, are comprehended in three classes : the declarative, the interrogative and exclamatory. I. Declarative sentences state or declare something, affirmatively or negatively, in some one or more of the various relations, of time past, present or future ; as true or false ; absolute or conditional ; possible or impossible ; certain or contingent ; &c. &c. II. Interrogative sentences are such as contain questions. III. Exclamatory sentences are such as are employed to express emotion or passion. SEC. I. SIMPLE SENTENCES. Punctuation. All simple sentences terminate with the period, or its representative, the interrogation or exclamation point. As no part of a simple sentence can separately make perfect sense ; in other words, inasmuch as simple sentences make, at every point, except at the end, imperfect sense ; the comma is the only intermediate pause which they admit ; (See Plate, figure 8 ;) and this is admissible only in the following cases. 1. When the subject or nominative case is followed by an in- separable adjunct of some length, a comma may be inserted imme- diately before the verb : e. g. The good taste of the present enlightened age, has not allowed us to neglect the cultivation of the English language. To be to- tally indifferent to praise or censure, is a real defect of character. 2. When the connection is interrupted by a circumstance, a comma may be inserted both before and after it. For a full explanation of the circumstance, and its appropriate punctuation, see the end of this classification ; and also Punctuation, Comma, cases of omission, 3. 3. When the natural order of the sentence is reversed by transpo- sition, a comma may be inserted between the parts transposed : e. g. In the day of trouble, I called on the name of the Lord. Of all this, I was ignorant. Under these circumstances, he gave up the contest. 4. When the sentence is long, and the natural order unchanged, a comma may be inserted between parts which admit of transpo- sition : e. g. CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. 63 He began with censuring the ministry very severely, for delay- ing to give earlier notice to parliament of the disturbances in America. CLASS I. SIMPLE DECLARATIVE SENTENCES. (See Definition of a simple sentence, and also of a declarative sentence.) Examples. I fear the consequences. I will shortly return. You should acknowledge your faults. He has been a long time ill. Hold thy peace. Fear God. The windows of heaven were opened. The poor are often in want of the necessaries of life. Public wisdom, on some occasions, must condescend to give way to popular folly. Thou shalt not take the name of the Lord thy God in vain. The prosperity of the wicked is not durable. Be not desirous of vain-glory. Be not forward in the presence of your superiors. He was not, at that time, in the city. By means of their standing armies, they have every one lost their liberties. Besides this powerful engine of government, he had a most extraordinary talent of persuading men to his purpose. As to the temporal side of the question, I can have no dispute with you. This fastened on my mind more strongly, from its beauty being unexpected. He found in them the guileless manner of the earli- est times, with the culture of the most refined ones. The first of these paragraphs contains affirmative simple declarative sentences ; one of them only, (the last,) requiring intermediate punctuation : the second contains negative simp. deci. ; the last only, as before, requiring intermediate punctuation : the third contains examples of transposition : the fourth examples of possible transposition, though not actually transposed, and punctuated accordingly. YES, YEA, AY, AYE | NO, NAY ; WELL. The words, yes, with its equivalents yea, ay and aye, no, with its equivalent nay and well, when employed elliptically, have some peculiarities which may, perhaps, be as well explained in connec- tion with simple declaratives, as anywhere else. As much that I shall say about them, may not be perfectly intelligible until we shall have reached a more advanced stage of the classification, the examination should be deferred until the classification shall have been thoroughly committed to memory and understood. 1. Yes and no. 1. When these words or their equivalents, merely reply to a question, or assent to or deny a proposition, in other words when they are used singly and independently, they represent simple or compound sentences, and are to be treated as such : e. g. 64 CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. Is your master at home ? Yes. Is your brother well ? Yes. You are not wounded, father f No. But the young hero fell not f No. Are they those whom want compels to toil for their daily bread ? No. Yes and wo, in the first four of these examples, represent simple declarative sentences, ana consequently are themselves to be considered and treated aa simple declaratives. The sen- tences successively represented are these: "He is at home:" "My brother is well :" "I am not wounded ;" " The young hero fell not." In the fifth example, n o represents the following compound sentence; and it must itself therefore bo treated as a compound sentence: "They are not those whom want compels to toil for their daily bread." In order, then, to determine when yes or no is simple or com- pound, it must be ascertained, in the first place, whether it is used independently ; that is, unconnected with any thing succeeding it, expressed or understood ; and then, secondly, whether the sentence it represents is simple or compound. With regard to the last particular, there is little danger of mis- take ; for the sentence, preceding yes or no, always contains the sentence represented by it. Nor is it difficult to ascertain the first, when the connection is expressed and properly punctuated. But this is not always the case ; for sometimes the connection is under- stood ; and sometimes, if expressed, yes and no are separated from it by the period, or by what is supposed to be its representative, an exclamation point. In such cases, these words appear to be simple sentences, or what is the same, to represent simple sentences, when they are actually parts of compound sentences : e. g. Are they those whom want compels to toil for their daily bread ? No. The labors of such are the very blessings of their condition. What will content you ? Talent ? No ! Enterprise ? No ! Cour- age ? No ! Reputation ? No ! Virtue ? No ! The men whom you would select, should possess, not one, but all of these. In the first of these examples, no is not independent, though it seems to be so, in conse- quence of the period after It, but is closely connected with the succeeding words, together with which it tonus a double compact senteuce, with the first and second part expressed. (See Double Compact below.) The longest pause which can be properly inserted between these puns, is the semicolon. (See Punctuation of the Single Compact below.) JVo, in the second example, is not more independent than in the first. It is the first part of a double compact as before, with the second and all the other parts understood. Completed, it would read thus : " Talent ? No, but something more," &c, or th us : " Talent ? No, lor the men whom I would select,, should possess not talent merely, but enterprise, courage, repu- tation and virtue." 2. These words are often emphatically repeated: e. g. Is he indeed a villain ? No : no. Will you accept my offer ? Yes : yes. When thus repeated, though independent of a sequent connection, the repetition as such, forms a compound loose sentence ; lor the sentences, represented by yes and no, being substi- tuted, we should have the following : " He is not a villain : he is not "a villain." " I will accept your offer : I will accept your oiler." These are loose sentences. (See Loose Sentence below.) 3. With or without repetition, yes and no are often followed by the sentences they represent : e. d Variety. Seek, and ye shall find. I was hungry, and ye gave me no meat. The rain descended, and the floods came, and the winds 80 CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. blew, and beat upon that house ; and it fell: I have given five times as much as he, and yet I fear I have not given enough. The idea of God, it is said, may be expunged from the heart of man, and yet that heart will be the seat, still, of the same constitu- tional impulses as ever. He could not do as he wished, and so he would do nothing. Let him see that something is to be gained by study, and then he will apply himself to books. Seek ; i. e. ifyo seek— then ye shall, &c. I was hungry ; i. e. though I was — yet ye gave, &c, 4 th Variety. This melancholy event having occurred, he felt unable to remain in that neighborhood, and emigrated to the state of Ohio. Such being the case, there is of course an end to argument. His friend being much touched, even to tears, at this, with a most affectionate look he said, Keep those tears for thyself. This melancholy ; i. e. wlicn this melancholy event had, &c— then he felt, &c. 5 th Variety. In order to succeed in their enterprises, it is necessary that they should put on, at least, the appearance of virtue. In order to over- come these difficulties, he had recourse to all the most subtle arts of the courtiers of that period. To deny this, he must forfeit every claim to the title of an honest man. In order to make a suitable provision for his family, he must lie awake many a long night, and labor hard many a long day. In order that men, &c. ; i. e. if or when men, &c.—then it is necessary, &c. 2. Of the Double Compact. (See Definition of a double compact.) Of double compact with all the parts. Swear not by heaven, for it is God's throne ; but let your com- munication be yea, yea ; and nay, nay; for whatsoever is more than these, cometh of evil. It was not an eclipse that caused the darkness at the crucifixion of our Lord ; for the sun and moon were not relatively in a posi- tion to produce an eclipse ; but a direct interposition of God ; for on no other supposition can we account for it. These are the only double compacts I have been able to find, having all the parts expressed ; and the first of these is in part constructed out of materials afforded by Matth. v. Three of the four pails which legitimately belong to this sentence, are as many as are commonly used at the same time : more frequently not more than two of them are employed, and sometimes one alone. I subjoin examples of the different combinations in which they appear. 1. The fourth part is sometimes omitted : e. g. They had not come in search of gain, for the soil was sterile, and CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. 81 unproductive ; but they had come that they might worship God according to the dictates of their consciences. It was not enough that our fathers were of England ; the mas- ters of Ireland and the lords of Hindostan were of England too ; but our fathers were Englishmen, aggrieved, persecuted and ban- ished. 2. The third and fourth part are sometimes omitted : e. g. We must not impute the delay to indifference, for delay may be designed to promote our happiness. We dare not make ourselves of the number, or compare ourselves with some that commend themselves, for they, measuring them- selves by themselves, and comparing themselves among themselves, are not wise. Not all the chapters of human history are thus important ; the annals of our race have been filled up with incidents which convey no instruction. 3. When the negative or first part contains several members,* the second, third and fourth are sometimes omitted : e. g. [And what is our country T[ It is not the East with her hills and valleys, with her countless sails, and the rocky rampart of her shores ; it is not the North with her thousand villages, and her har- vest-home, with her frontier of the lake and ocean ; it is not the West with her forest sea and her inland isles, with her luxuriant expanses, clothed in the verdant corn, with her beautiful Ohio and her majestic Missouri ; nor is it yet the South, opulent in the mimic snow of the cotton, in the rich plantation of the rustling cane, and the golden robes of the rice-field. 4. The second only is sometimes omitted : e. g. Let not sin therefore reign in your mortal body, that ye should obey it in the lusts thereof; neither yield ye your members as in- struments of unrighteousness unto sin ; but yield yourselves unto God as those that are alive from the dead, and your members as instruments of righteousness unto God ; for sin shall not have do- minion over you. 5. The second and fourth are generally omitted ; and the nega- tive and affirmative, or the first and third proposition, are brought into immediate contrast : e. g. I am not come to destroy, but to fulfil. Labor not for the meal that perisheth, but for that meat which endureth unto everlasting life. Man shall not live by bread alone, but by every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of God. • With only one member, the second, third and fourth are omitted in colloquial writings. 82 CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. It is not his power, us attested by all that exists within the lim- its of actual discovery, but his power, as conceived to form and uphold a universe whose outskirts are unknown. We do not recognise in her the Christian, who has attained to the perfect liberty of God's children, but the exact type of those souls, at all times numerous, and especially among her sex, who, drawn powerfully to look to heaven, have not strength sufficient to disen- gage themselves entirely from the bondage of earth. For ;i criterion to distinguish this combination of the parts of a double compact from the single compact second form with the correlatives indeed — but, see above, General Note on the different species of compound sentences. 6. Occasionally, when the first and third parts are thus in imme- diate contrast, they are transposed : e. g. You was paid to fight against Alexander ; not to rail at him. They were asleep ; not alienated. 7. Finally, the negative is occasionally inserted as a clause in the affirmative : e. g. His wisdom, not his talents, attracts attention. Intrinsic worth, and not riches, procures esteem. Strong proofs, not a loud voice, produce conviction. Ambition, and not the safety of the state, was concerned. The copulative and, which occurs in one or two of these examples, is here equivalent to but, and elegantly used for it. It should be observed, before leaving the double compact sen- tence, that the negative is sometimes reduced to a single word : e. g. Nay, but it's really true : I had it from good hands, and so may you. (See Simple Declarative, Yes, No.) GENERAL NOTE ON THE DIFFERENT COMBINATIONS OF DOUBLE COM?ACT. Between the first and the succeeding parts, especially when the first consists of several members, no or nay is often introduced as a summary and equivalent expression of the for- mer : and occasionally when so introduced, it is immediately followed by the sentence which, in conformity with what I have said on a preceding page, it represents. (See Simple Declara- tive, Remarks on Yes and No.) I subjoin an example of each case. They are worthy of careful observation in view of delivery. The first is an example of the use of no alone : the second, of no and the sentence it represents together. No wars have ravaged these lands and depopulated these villa- ges ; no civil discords have been felt ; no disputed succession ; no religious rage ; no merciless enemy ; no affliction of Providence, which, while it scourged for the moment, cut off the sources of resuscitation ; no voracious and poisonous monsters ; no ; all this has been accomplished by the friendship, generosity and kindnfcss of the English nation. CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. 83 No effeminate nobility crowded into the dark and austere ranks of the pilgrims ; no Carr nor Villiers would lead on the ill-provided band of the despised Puritans ; no well-endowed clergy were on the alert to quit their cathedrals, and set up a pompous hierarchy in the frozen wilderness ; no craving governors were anxious to be sent over to our cheerless El Dorados of ice and of snow ; no ; they could not say they had encourged, patronized or helped the pil- grims : their own cares, their own labors, their own counsels, their own blood, contrived all, achieved all, bore all, sealed all. When no or nay is thus introduced, it should be regarded and treated precisely aa if it be- gan the sentence like nay in the last example under No. 7 above. 3. Examples of the Loose. (See Definition of a loose sentence.) 1. Of the Perfect Loose. Christians, familiar with the principles of justice, desire to see them adhered to in proceedings against others or themselves ; but those who are accustomed to act according to their own will, are much surprised when required to proceed regularly and agreeably to form and law. Let your moderation be known unto all men : the Lord is at hand. The first man is of the earth, earthy : the second man is the Lord from heaven. 2. Of the Imperfect Loose. History, as it has been written, is the genealogy of princes : the field-book of conquerors. The law is not made for a righteous man, but for the lawless and disobedient ; for the unholy and pro- fane ; for murderers of fathers and murderers of mothers ; for man- slayers ; for whoremongers ; for them that defile themselves with mankind; for manstealers ; for liars ; for perjured persons ; and if there be any other thing that is contrary to sound doctrine. CLASS II. COMPOUND INTERROGATIVE SENTENCES. (See Definition of a compound sentence, and also the Definition of an interrogative.) Compound interrogative sentences, besides being, like simple in- terrogatives, definite, indefinite and indirect, are also double and semi-interrogative. The double interrogative consists of two parts united by the dis- junctive conjunction or. The second of these is often much abbre- viated ; and both the first and second, considered independently of each other, may have either a close, compact or loose construction. 84 CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. Strictly speaking, the double Interrogative is a declarative single compact sentence, with the correlative words, whether — or: the loriner nearly always Understood I .-ay nearly always, because I have met with a few exceptions. The following arc examples: w Whether is it easier to say to the sick Of the palsy, Tny Bins be forgiven thee J or to say, Arise, and take up thy bed, and walk " "Whether is he the author of tin; flame, who lays down the fuel; or who applies the torch " Of course, the interrogation between itd parts, properly represents the comma; though it may, in view of allowable deviations, represent the semicolon. (See Kiamples below.) The semi-interrogative is distinguished from all other interroga- tives, by being in part declarative or declarative exclamatory. The interrogative portion may be either definite, indefinite, indi- rect or double ; and both the interrogative and the declarative or declarative exclamatory, may be either simple or compound : if compound, either close, compact or loose. Besides this variety of construction of each separately considered, the interrogative, and the declarative or exclamatory portion, form together, rela- tively to one another, either a close, compact, or loose sentence. (See Examples below.) They are punctuated like the sentences which, independently or relatively, they form. 1. THE DEFINITE INTERROGATIVE. (See Definition of a Definite Interrogative, Simple sentences, Class n. 1.) 1. Examples of the Close. Are John and James residing at home this summer ? Is not virtue rewarded and vice punished ? Is it true, that the woman died of mere joy, on being told that her long-lost child had been discovered ? Do you think it wise or humane, at this moment, to insult them by sticking up in the pillory the man who dared to stand forth their advocate ? Do you think that a blessing of that kind, that a victory, obtained by justice over bigotry and oppres- sion, should have a stigma cast upon it, by an ignominious sentence upon men, bold and honest enough to propose that measure? Has he not himself, have not all the martyrs after him, poured forth their blood in the conflict ? 2. Examples of the Single Compact. The examples are confined to the illustration of single compacts. Though I have looked diligently for a double compact, I have hitherto been unable to find one. The nature of a double compact seems to be incompatible with interrogation. At most, I have found and that rarely, a mixture of this sentence with the predominance of some other species in the game question. Almost all compacts purely interrogative, appear with the correlative words and parts reversed. With the parts in the natural order, they would cease to be purely interrogative, and become semi-interrogative. 1st form : with both correlative words expressed. Is it then a time to remove foundations, when the earth itself is shaken ? Is eloquence therefore less excellent in itself, because it has been abused ? Is he so seriously ill, in consequence of the acci- dent which occurred the other day, that he cannot leave his room ? CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. 85 I'd form : with one of the correlative words expressed. Is this a time to forfeit the protection of God, when the hearts of men are failing them for fear ? Is it because foreigners are in a condition to set our malice at defiance, that we are willing to con- tract engagements of friendship ? Must we remain here, while he is absent on this expedition ? Shall we proceed, though the expected aid should not arrive ? Am I to forgive, if he will not repent ? 3d form : with neither of the correlative words expressed. Could you succeed, had you the means of which you speak ? Would you perform a benevolent action, did you not know that others would see and applaud it ? Can you insult a man, unable, by reason of his physical infirmities, to avenge himself? Should we oppress a man, already driven to despair, by the miseries of those who are depending on him for support ? Did he die, still hoping for pardon ? 3. Examples of the Loose. The loose interrogative, and the loose interrogative exclamation, of the different species, have the interrogation and exclamation point sometimes inserted between the parts, and sometimes only at the end : the semicolon and colon taking their place. The student should hear this in mind ; that, when he meets with a loose sentence having the interrogation or exclamation point between the parts, he may not mistake such parts for independent sen- tences. In this work, when the interrogation or exclamation point is thus inserted, he will be kept from error by observing that the first letter succeeding it, is not a capital. This is the manner, I conceive, in which the loose interrogative, or loose interrogative exclamatory, should always be printed ; and this is the maimer of the older works. The modern practice, however, at least on this side of the Atlantic, is almost uniform in neglecting it. 1. Of the Perfect Loose. Had not the shepherd made them to lie down in green pastures ; had he not led them beside the still waters ; restored he not their souls ; did he not lead them, for his own name sake, in paths of righteousness ; and was he not with them, still keeping them from evil ? Have the gates of death been opened unto thee ? or hast thou seen the doors of the shadow of death ? Canst thou bring forth Mazzaroth in his season ? or canst thou guide Arcturus with his sons Are we formed with a passionate longing for immortality, and yet destined to perish after this short period of existence ? are we prompted to the noblest actions, and supported through life under the severest hardships, and the most delicate temptations, by the hope of a reward which is visionary and chimerical ? 2. Of the Imperfect Loose. Do we never meet with the charity which melts at suffering : with the honesty which disdains, and is proudly superior to false- 8 8fi CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. hood : with the active beneficence which gives to others its time and its labor : with the modesty which shrinks from notice, and gives all its sweetness to retirement : with the gentleness which breathes peace to all, and throws a beautiful lustre over the walks of domestic society ? Knowest thou it because thou wast then born ? or because the number of thy days is great. 2. THE INDEFINITE INTERROGATIVE. (See Definition of Indefinite Interrogative, Simple sentences, Class II. 2.) 1. Examples of the Close. Where is the man whose moral courage is equal to the task of rising and pleading this cause against this host of the licentious and profane ? When did patriotism attempt or moral courage achieve a more signal victory ? Whose house is that which I perceive on the hill yonder ? Who does not feel, what reflective American does not acknowledge, the incalculable advantage, derived to this land, out of the foundations of civil, intellectual and moral truth, from which we have drawn in England ? Examples of Fragmentary Close. The man and woman, with her child ? What virtues and vices V The context of the first example implies " What became of" at the beginning ; and of tho second, " approximate in the way you mention ;" i. e. certain virtues to vices : certain vices to virtues. 2. Examples of the Single Compact* 1st form : with both of the correlative words expressed. What is so calculated to impress them with the importance of prayer, as the being called at stated intervals to take part in our devotional supplications to God ? Who can tell how often there the waves of barbarous migrations may have broken harmless against the cliffs, where nature was the strong ally of the defenders of the land? 2d form : with one of the correlative words expressed. Why should I question his veracity, when he assured me that this man had never done an act of beneficence in his life ? When can you hope for such another, if this be neglected ? To what •shall we impute the misfortunes that have overtaken and over- whelmed the country within the last five years, if not to an officious, * The double not found. CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES 87 arbitrary, tyrannical meddling with the natural currents and laws of trade ? 3d form : with neither of the correlative words expressed. Who would not have committed the same crime, had he been exposed to the same temptation ? What would be the result, were he to fail in the very outset of the enterprise ? The indefinite compact is often made fragmentary, by the suppression of all of the first part except the interrogative what, thus : What, if he did J What, though he fled T What, when you met him F {See Ch. VI. Rule XIV. Note at the end of examples.) 3. Examples of the Loose. 1. Of the Perfect Loose. By what authority doest thou these things ; or who gave thee this authority ? When shall these things be ? and what sign shall there be, when these things come to pass ? Where is now that splendor of the most exalted dignities ? where are those marks of honor and distinction ? what has become of that pomp of feast- ings and rejoicings? what is the issue of those frequent acclama- tions, and extravagantly flattering encomiums, lavished by a whole people assembled in the circus to see the public shows ? 2. Of the Imperfect Loose. Where is her splendor : her wealth : her power : her glory f To whom do we owe it, that in this favored land the gospel of the blessed God has best displayed its power to bless humanity, by uniting the anticipations of^a better world with the highest inter- ests and pursuits of this : by carrying its merciful influence into the very business and bosoms of men : by making the ignorant wise, and the miserable happy : by breaking the fetters of the slave, and teaching the " babe and the suckling" those simple and sublime truths which give life its dignity and virtue, and fill im- mortality with hope % 3. THE INDIRECT INTERROGATIVE. (See Definition of Indirect Interrogative, Simple sentences, Class II. 3.) These sentences, like other compounds, are close, compact and loose ; but as they seldom occur, I shall content myself with giv- ing examples without reference to these divisions : trusting that the student is well enough acquainted, at this stage, with their dis- tinctive features, to recognise them, whenever they appear. 88 CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. 1 . Examples of the first kind. You do not think, I hope, that I will join in conversation with such a man ; or that I will so far betray my character, as to give coun- tenance to such desperate proceedings f This sentence is, alone, an illustration of close, compact and loose. As a whole, it is imper- fect loose : having in the first part a close, and in the second, a compact construction. / 2. Examples of the second kind. And it came to pass, when he was in a certain city, behold a man full of leprosy ; who, seeing Jesus, fell on his face and be- sought him : saying, Lord, if thou wilt, thou canst make me clean f And he put forth his hand and touched him : saying, I will : be thou clean. I quote no more of this sentence, as example, than the question it contains : the question of the leper. 3. Examples of the third kind. You surely will not say, I am bound to read such books f Truth, Lord, yet the dogs eat of the crumbs which fall from their master's table ? Sure he that made us, made us to enjoy ? 4. THE DOUBLE INTERROGATIVE. (See Definition of a Double Interrogative.) Examples. Is it lawful to give tribute unto Csesar, or not 9 Art thou he that should come, or do we look for another 9 Is it lawful on the Sabbath day to do good, or to do evil 9 to save life, or to destroy it 9 Has God forsaken the works of his own hands, or does he always graciously preserve and keep and guide them 9 5. THE SEMI-INTERROGATIVE. (See Definition of a Semi-interrogative sentence.) Examples. He approached the man and said, what place is this ? And he turned unto the woman and said unto Simon, Seest thou this woman ? If you reasoned aright, and probed the soul well, would you not find that from these, as from hidden springs, a great deal of all the best felicity, you have tasted, has welled up ? CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. 89 Beasts of burden may easily be managed by a new master, but will the wild ass submit to bonds ? In such a state, eloquence, it is obvious, would be most studied as the surest means of rising* to influence and power ; and what sort of eloquence ? To you the world is in its prime : why should you anticipate its decay S 1 The baptism of John : was it from heaven, or of men 9 Then said Jesus unto them, I will ask you one thing : is it lawful on the Sabbath-day to do good, or to do evil 9 to save life, or to destroy it 2 During the conversation he was silent; but I heard him, as he went out, saying to a man with whom he was walking, And so he died without making, after all, a confession of his many crimes f He who maims my person, affects that which medicine may rem- edy ; but what herb has sovereignty over the wound of slander ? he who ridicules my poverty or reproaches my profession, upbraids me with that which industry may retrieve, and integrity may rec- tify ; but what riches shall redeem the bankrupt fame ? The two Semi-interrogatives in the last example, taken together, may be called a loose semi- interrogative. (See definition of a loose sentence.) CLASS III. COMPOUND EXCLAMATORY SENTENCES. (See Definition of a compound sentence, and also of an exclamatory sentence.) Compound exclamatory sentences are declarative, interrogative, compilative and semi- exclamatory : the last so called, because only in part exclamatory. Compound compellatives differ in nothing from the simple, ex- cept in comprising two or more names connected by copulatives expressed or understood, or either one or two, followed by an ad- junct or rather circumstance, also connected by a copulative ex- pressed or understood. As the compellatives necessarily make imperfect sense, they must always be separated from what follows by the comma : if followed by a circumstance, that too, making imperfect sense, must be separated from the succeeding part of the sentence by the comma. Almost every species of exclamatory sentences appears in a fragmentary form. 1. THE DECLARATIVE EXCLAMATORY. (See Definition of a declarative sentence, and also of an exclamatory sentence.) 1. JExamples of the Close. Shame and death to the enemies of the Queen and State ! Wo to those who in disgust shall venture to crush her ! There goes 90 CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. one who belonged to the army of Italy ! God forbid that my happiness should be bought at such a price ! The next gale that sweeps from the north, will bring to our ears the clash of resound- ing arms ! Would that the principle of that faith which we have believed, and which we prize, were also hers ! That they should have attempted to pass the grand, yet solid and judicious operations of a mind like his, as being the mere theatrical start and emotion, the giddy, hair-brained eccentricities of a romantic boy ; that they should have had the presumption to suppose themselves capable of chaining down to the floor of par- liament, a genius so ethereal, towering and sublime, seems unac- countable ! Examples of Fragmentary Close. Washington and Hamilton in five years ! One million of men torn from their homes, butchered in battle, and left to rot and bleach where they fell, to gratify the ambition of a despot ! That those who have been rocked in the same cradle by the same ma- ternal hand, and imbibed the first genial nourishment of infant ex- istence from the same blessed source, should be forced to contend in impious strife for the destruction of that being, derived from their common parents ! [He launched forth upon the unknown deep, to discover a new world under the patronage of Ferdinand and Isabella.] The pat- ronage of Ferdinand and Isabella ! [Let us dwell for a moment on the auspices under which our country was brought to light.] The patronage of Ferdinand and Isabella ! [Yes, doubtless, they have fitted out a convoy, worthy the noble temper of the man, and the gallantry of the object.] 2. Examples of the Compact. 1. Of the Single Compact. 1st form : with both of the correlative words expressed. When at length we meet again, before the blessed tribunal of that Deity whose mild doctrines, and whose mercies, ye have this day renounced ; then shall you feel the agony and grief of soul, which now tear the bosom of your weak accuser ! Then if you see my limbs convulsed, my teeth clenched, my hair bristling, and cold dews trembling on my brow ; seize me ! 2d form : with one of the correlative words expressed. Troy thought so once, yet the land of Priam lives only in song ! — The believers in Christianity are many, but it belongs to the few that are wise to correct their credulity ! CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. 91 [Oil God !] if thou art still the widow's husband, and the father of the fatherless, pity, pity this afflicted mother, and grant that her hapless orphans may find a friend, a benefactor, a father in thee ! While led by thy hand, and fighting under thy banners ; open thou their eyes to behold in every valley and in every plain, what the prophets beheld by the same illumination: chariots of fire, and horses of fire ! 3d form : with neither of the correlative words expressed. Happy would it have been for her and all, had my first counsels prevailed ! — Happy were it for us, did we constantly view the great Creator and Preserver of all, continually manifesting himself in his various works ! Could we approach thee, gladly would we drop the tear of sympathy, and pour into thy bleeding bosom the balm of con- solation ! You have vanquished him in the field ; strive now to rival him in the sacred arts of peace ! You will never think as I do, and I will never think as you do ! Stain my riband blue, cries the illustrious knight, and the fountain of honor will have a fast and faithful servant ! Flung into life in the midst of a revolution that quickened every energy of a people who acknowledge no superior, he commenced his course a stranger by birth, and a scholar by charity ! Examples of Fragmentary Single Compact. Did you know the burning of this bosom ! — [but I speak un- thinkingly perhaps what my delicacy should not have whispered even in the ear of friendship !] Could we but prevail on my father to think thus ! [Alas, his mind is not formed for contracting into that narrow sphere, which his fortune has now marked out for him.] Had you seen him, Julia, when he pronounced this forever ! Had you seen her eyes, how they spoke, when her father gave me her hand ! Did you feel that name as I do ! — [Even traced with my pen, what throbbing remembrances has it raised !] Could I be with you ! — [but I shall not be forgotten at the in- terview !] When I think of the many thousands of my fellow-creatures groaning under oppression and misery ! — [Great God ! hast thou peopled those regions of thy world for the purpose of casting out their inhabitants to chains and torture ?] Admirable ! but upon this doctrine, the poor man who has but one single vice, must be in a bad way. 92 CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. Each of those oxclamatory sentences, except the last, has its second part, beginning with then understood. What that part may he, the student must surmise. The last example, which 1ms the com laiivi- word indeed suppressed, lias the first part in a fragmentary statu ; which is here, it will be observed, pointed as exclamatory. This iB often the case with every species of exclamatory sentence. 1 make tide remark once for alL To become familiar with these fragmentary forms, is of the highest importance to a correct delivery. They are frequently met with. 2. Of the Double Compact. Surely victories and triumph do not give immortal glory to a city ! but the exercise of mercy towards a vanquished enemy, the using of moderation in the greatest prosperit}^ and fearing to offend God by a haughty and insolent pride ! It disturbed no innodent man ; it knew where its appearance would strike terror, and who would cry out, " A ghost !" it made itself visible in the right quarter, and compelled the guilty and the conscience-smitten, and none others, to start with, Pr'ythee, see there ! behold ! look ! Io ! If I stand here, I saw him ! He is not content to triumph over the Gauls, the Egyptians and Pharnaces ; he must triumph over his own countrymen ! He is not content to cause the statues of Scipio and Petrius to be carried before him ; he must be graced by that of Cato ! He is not content with the simple ef¥igy of Cato ; he must exhibit that of his suicide ! He is not satisfied to insult the Romans by triumphing over the death of liberty ; they must gaze upon the representation of her expiring agonies, and mark the wri things of her last, fatal struggle ! They are not fighting ; (do not disturb them ;) they are merely pausing ! This man is not expiring with agony ; that man is not dead ; he is only pausing ! They are not angry with one another ; they have no cause of quarrel, but their country thinks that there should be a pause ! All that you see,. sir, is nothing like fighting ; there is no harm, nor cruelty, nor bloodshed in it whatever ; it is nothing more than a political pause ! You would not select the political firebrand ; you would not seek your seconds in the tavern or in the brothel ; you would not in- quire out the man who was oppressed with debts, contracted by licentiousness, debauchery, every species of profligacy ! [who, sir, I ask, were Caesar's seconds in his undertakings V] In the first of these examples, we have the first and third propositions in contact : in the second, the first, second and third: in the third, a series of double compacts, consisting of the first and third: the fourth differs from the third only in having the first proposition of most of the compacts consist of two or more members : the last consists ,of the first proposition, only, with several members. 3. Examples of the Loose. 1. Of the Perfect Loose. Time flies : words are unavailing : the chieftains prepare for in- stant battle ! CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. 93 This is the consequence of your generosity : he whom your good- ness raised to an equality with your own children, is the murderer of your children ! May the disciples of Washington then see, as we now see, the flag of the Union floating on the top of the Capitol ; and then, as now, may the sun in his course visit no land more free, more happy, more lovely, than this our own country ! 2. Of the Imperfect Loose. He aspired to be the highest ! above the people ! above the authorities ! above the laws ! above his country ! This is the way to fall, when one must fall ! to surrender, when one must surrender ! to die, when death comes ! Oh the insupportable anguish of reflecting that we died of hun- ger, when there was bread enough and to spare ! that we perished from thirst, when the waters of salvation were rolling at our very feet! It was the spirit of liberty which still abides on earth, and has its home in the bosoms of the brave : which but yesterday in beau- tiful France restored their violated charter : which even now burns brightly on the towers of Belgium, and has rescued Poland from the tyrant's grasp : making their sons, aye, and their daughters too, the wonder and the admiration of the world; the pride and glory of the human race ! 2. THE INTERROGATIVE EXCLAMATORY. (See Definition of an interrog. sent, and also of an exclamatory sentence.) 1. THE DEFINITE INTERROGATIVE. (See Definition of a Definite Interrogative.) 1. Examples of the Close. Shall it be said that we will not sacrifice one prejudice on the altar of the Union for its preservation ! Was it a wonder, then, that I seized my prejudices, and, with a blush, burned them on the altar of my country ! [Is it come to this !] Shall an inferior magistrate, a governor who holds his power of the Roman people, in a Roman province, within sight of Italy, bind, scourge, torture with fire and red-hot plates of iron, and at last put to the infamous death of the cross, a Roman citizen ! Examples of Fragmentary Close. Of a friend who had saved his life ! [Incredible.] 94 CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. That God and nature have put into our hands ! Go from Boston to New York and thence to Philadelphia in two days ! 2. Examples of the Compact. I have not been able to find a double compact definite, and even single compacts are very scarce. Such as I nave been able to collect will be found below, and in the appropriate place in Chapter VI. 1st form: with both correlative words expressed. Might Rome then have been taken, if these men, who were at our gates, had not wanted courage for the attempt ! Would it not be advisable rather to attend to this declared object of the war now, than wait until after the Canadian scheme is effected ! 2d form : with one correlative word expressed. Will you charge me with a purpose to overthrow the government, because I oppose misrule ! Do you strike me like a dog, because I will not submit to oppres- sion ! Is tyranny of this kind to be borne with, where law is said to exist! Do you propose to defeat the enemy, when at the gates ! 3d form: with neither of the correlative words expressed. Could hope have ever visited your breasts, had Christ not suf- fered on the cross the vengeance of man and the wrath of God ! Would the enemies of the country dare to assail us, having made such ample preparations to repel them ! Could he do this, and I remain silent ! Victory, and I not there ! 3. Examples of the Loose. 1. Of the Perfect Loose. Was it not enough tha+ sorrow robed the happy home in mourn- ing : was it not enough that disappointment preyed upon its loveliest prospects : was it not enough that its little inmates cried in vain for bread, and heard no answer but the poor father's sigh, and drank no sustenance but the wretched mother's tears : was this a time for passion, conscienceless, licentious passion, with its eye of lust, its heart of stone, its hand of rapine, to rush into the mournful sanc- tuary of misfortune, casting crime into the cup of wo, and rob the parents of their last wealth, then' child, and rob the child of her only charm, her innocence ! CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. 95 Examples of Fragmentary Perfect Loose. To change the settled law of property ! to confiscate the widow's pittance ! to plunder the orphan's cradle ! and to violate the dead man's grave ! [For this, too, there was a precedent.] To turn forth into our settlements, among our ancient connec- tions, friends and relations, the merciless cannibal, thirsting for the blood of man, woman and child ! to send forth the infidel savage against your protestant brethren to lay waste their country, deso- late their dwellings and extirpate their race and name, with these horrible hell-hounds of savage war ! 2. Of the Imperfect Loose. Are we brought into the world and allowed to occupy a place in it, only that we may pursue trifles ! that we may brutishly gratify our appetites and passions ! that we may leave the world at last, perhaps at the expiration of threescore years and ten, without having derived any advantage from being in it, or conferring a single benefit upon it ! Fragmentary Imperfect Loose. What ! to attribute the sacred sanctions of God and nature to the massacres of the Indian scalping-knife ! to the cannibal savage, torturing, murdering, devouring, drinking the blood of his mangled victims ! [By what name shall I now address you $ Shall I call you sol- diers ?] Soldiers ! who have dared to besiege the son of your em- peror ! who have made him a prisoner in his own intrenchments ! [Can I call you citizens ?] Citizens ! who have trampled under your feet the authority of the senate ! who have violated the most awful sanctions, even those which hostile states have ever held in respect, the rights of ambassadors, and the laws of nations ! 2. THE INDEFINITE INTERROGATIVE. (See Definition of the Indefinite Interrogative sent.) 1 . Examples of the Close. How easily do vigor of body and infirmity of mind lodge under the same roof ! What a multitude of this and that living host, now glorious in the blaze of arms, and burning with desires of conquest, will fall and perish ! How often do we see in our public gazettes, a pompous display vb CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. of honors to the memory of some veteran, patriot, who has been suffered to linger out his latter days in unregarded penury ! 2. Examples of the Compact. I have not been able to fled a double compact indefinite : consequently the examples below are confined to the single, as under the head of definite. 1st form : with both correlative words expressed. Where then shall the poor longing for the improvement of their condition, the ignorant yearning to look with intelligence upon the fair page of knowledge, the oppressed sighing for liberty and the persecuted for rest, the poor, the ignorant, the oppressed and per- secuted of every clime, find an asylum, when young America, whose boast has been the largest liberty of conscience and exertion, closes the door against their approach, or allowing them to enter, places upon their limbs the very fetters from which they fled ! 2d form : with one of the correlatives expressed. What momentous meaning hangs upon that word, first, when its peculiar relations in this connection are understood ! How many favorite schemes of enjoyment would the thought of him and his will put to flight, if faithfully admitted to the inner chambers of the mind ! 3d form : with neither of the correlative words expressed How well would it have been, had he but retraced the fountain of that document ! How different would have been our lot this day, both as men and citizens, had the revolution failed of success ! What, what are the hours of a splendid wretch like this, com- pared with those that shed their poppies and their roses upon the pillows of our peaceful and virtuous patriots ! The only fragmentary form of the indefinite compact, of which I am at present aware, is the following : varied by the use of differ- ent correlative words, what, though ; ivhat, then. [The success of the campaign depends upon the occurrence of no unfavorable contingency.] But what, if our supplies should be cut off ! "Then shall we do," or something similar, is here understood after what. 3. Examples of the Loose. 1 . Of the Perfect Loose. How- striking the event ! how wide its influence ! how strange its effects ! Who can deny that the existence of such a country presents a subject for human congratulation : who can deny that CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. 97 its gigantic advancement offers a field for the most rational con- jecture ! How few modern orators could venture on such apostrophes ; and what a powei of genius would it require to give such figures now their proper grace, or make them produce a due effect on the hearers ! 2. Of the Imperfect Loose. How precious must that liberty be, which could prompt a great people to suffer their native prince to wander in exile ! which could move them to resist every attempt to replace him on the throne ! What a spectacle was this, to see uncircumcised Philistines lay- ing their profane hands upon the testimony of God's presence ! to see the glorious mercy-seat under the roof of an idol ! to see the two cherubims spreading their wings under a false god ! Where in the compass of human literature, can the fancy be so elevated by sublime description : can the heart be so warmed by simple, unaffected tenderness ! 3. THE INDIRECT INTERROGATIVE. (See Definition of the Indirect Interrogative sent) 1. Examples of the first kind. Thou dost not mean — No, no, thou wouldst not have me make A trial of my skill upon my child ! 2. Examples of the second kind. Of this variety of the indirect, 1 have met with no examples. 3. Examples of the third kind. [But how was it received by the American cabinet ?] Surely, they were indignant at this treatment : surely the air rings with reproaches upon a man, who has thus made them stake their rep- utation upon a falsehood, and then gives little less than the he direct to their assertions ! [No, sir : nothing of the kind.] 3. THE COMPELLATIVE EXCLAMATORY. (See Definition of a Compellative exclamatory.) Examples. Men, brethren and fathers! — Friends and fellow-citizens!— Truth ! friendship ! my country ! [accept my last sacrifice.] Prin- 9 98 CLASSIFICATION OF SENTENCES. ces, potentates, and powers ! — Romans, countrymen, and lovers ! — Prescott, Putnam, Stark, Brooks, Read, Pomeroy, Bridge ! — [our eyes seek for you in vain amidst the broken band.] Jerusalem, Jerusalem, thou that killest the prophets, and stonest them that are sent unto thee ! [how often would I have gathered, &c. t part of a single compact indirect semi-interroga- tive exclamation with both the correlative words understood. If complete it would read thus: Vet because he is noble, therefore let him not die a felon's death ! The interrogative portion is the second kind of indirect: that used in supplication. The exclamation in the third example is the first part of a single compact, with the second part understood, thus: If I were a thunderbolt, then I would destroy. In the fourth and last example, the exclamation is a simple indirect interrogative: having the reply partly understood, thus: Ham. 'Tis very strange ! Hot. Yes, indeed, but as I do live, my honored lord, 'tis true ; &.C. II. INTERROGATIVE EXCLAMATORY SENTENCES. 1. THE DEFINITE INTERROGATIVE EXCLAMATORY. {Rule II.) Examples. Art thou my father ! Is he dead ! Was it not terrible ! Are such things possible ! Darest thou thus provoke me, insolent ! Could he think of it in those circumstances ! Has it come to this ! Were they infatuated ! Am I, with undoubted right on my side, to be thus despoiled ! Will this unhappy contest, already quite too protracted for the reputation of the parties, never come to an end ! Can it be possible ! Is that little insignificant creature the cause of all this turmoil ! This sentence appears for the most part in fragments. 1 subjoin numerous examples. They are delivered precisely as when complete. Examples. Liberty ! It is for noble minds.— I am charged with being an emissary of France. An emissary of France ! — Sell my country's independence to France ! And for what ? — Not inferior to this was the wisdom of him who resolved to shear the wolf. Shear a wolf ! — As their parents are, so are they destined to become. Destined ! — Is a man possessed of talents adequate to the occa- sion ? Adequate ! — To send forth the merciless cannibal thirsting for blood ! Against whom ? Mr. H. And why were they overworked, pray ? Stew. To carry water, sir. Mr. H. To carry water ! And what were they carrying water for ? Stew. Sure, sir, to put out the fire. Mr. H. Fire ! What fire ? Stew. Oh, sir, your father's house is burned down to the ground. Mr. H. My father's house burned down ! And how came it set on fire % THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 141 Steio. I think, sir, it must have been the torches. Mr. H. Torches ! What torches ? Stew. At your mother's funeral. Mr. H. My mother dead ! Thou here ! And have not prison gloom And taunting foes, and threatened doom Obscured thy courage yet ? 2. THE INDEFINITE INTERROGATIVE EXCLAMATORY. (Rule III) Examples. What sounds these are ! What a scene is this ! How beauti- ful it appears ! How he glares ! What an honorable testimony this from a vanquished adversary ! What a noble idea doth it give of that wonderful orator's action ! With what force, in par- ticular, does he maintain the doctrines of grace ! With what feel- ings must an intelligent heathen approach his final catastrophe ! Oh why am I thus ! Where could my thoughts have been ! How wretched the condition of that infatuated man ! How pleas- ing is the prospect ! What a deal of pains for little profit ! How great the command over his passions ! What an affecting grace- fulness in his instructions ! Who ever thought In such a homely piece of stuff, to see The mighty senate's tool ! What bare-faced shifting ! — Fragmentary indefinite exclamations are common ; but there is too little variety in them to require much illustration. Examples. Who;! When! What! Where! Which! Why !— For what ! A mess of pottage. — How ! To whom ! How beautiful ! What greatness of conception ! How pale ! What impertinence ! How shameful ! What a spectacle ! Simple indefinite exclamations, like simple indefinite interrogatives, frequently call for a repetition of a previous declaration or question either not understood, or of such an extraor- dinary character as to appeal* improbable if literally understood ; in which case then* delivery is in iike manner reversed ; that is to say, instead of taking the falling slide, they take the rising. (See Indefinite Interrogative.) Generally, however, such exclamations consist merely of interrogative pronouns and ad- verbs, as, for the most part, in the examples subjoined. Examples. How ! Will you suffer your glory to be sullied ? — What ! Shall we be told that the exasperated feelings of a people were excited ? 142 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. — What motive, then, could have such influence in their bosom V What motive ! That which nature, the common parent, plants in the bosom of men. — Not inferior to this was the wisdom of him who resolved to shear a wolf. What ! Shear a wolf ? But how, and by what means V What ! Not a word ! I ask you once again. How ! Leap into the pit our life to save ? To save our life, leap all into the grave ? When ! Why, yesterday, When all the world were out to play. 3 THE INDIRECT INTERROGATIVE EXCLAMATORY. (Rule IV.) 1. Examples of the first kind. You will not go there ! He was not a hypocrite ! Then we shall not see him pass by with chains on his legs ! He went ! Thou wert unarmed ! Thou nearest him deny the atrocious deed ! You have not read it, then ! Thou art not wont to join in idle tales ! You never met the like but once ! You did not see him, then ! They were all present in that hour ! Ye w T ill not murder him ! Then saw you not his face ! You would not screen a traitor from the law ! Thou wouldst not have me make a trial of my skill upon my child ! You witnessed the horrid spectacle ! They saw nothing in that transaction to disgrace them forever ! You left them on the verge of the precipice ! These sentences, like the interrogatives from which they are derived, are often fragmentary ; and when so employed, it is difficult to distinguish them'froin simple declarative and simple definite interrogative exclamations. If, however, the emotion be either purely or in pail that of contempt, scorn or disgust, the fragment, it is pretty certain, is indirect, and should be de- livered with the waving slide. Examples. Thou wear a lion's hide ! doff it for shame, And hang a calf-skin on those recreant limbs. Wal. Alasco, this is wild and mutinous : An outrage, marking deep and settled spleen To just authority. Alas. Authority ! Show me authority in honor's garb, And I will down upon the humblest knee That ever homage bent to sovereign sway. Vol. Indeed, when you turned justice into rigor, And even that rigor was pursued with fury, THE BEND SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 143 We undertook to mediate for the queen, And hoped to moderate Van. To moderate ! What would you moderate ? My indignation ? To mediate for the queen ! — You undertook ! — Wherein concerned it you? Val. Did not the Romans civilize you ? Van. No. Val. We found you naked. Van. And you found us free. Val. Would you be temperate once and hear me out — Van. Speak things that honest men may hear with temper : Speak the plain truth and varnish not your crimes. Say that you once were virtuous : long ago A frugal, hardy people, like the Britons, Before you grew thus elegant in vice, And gave your luxuries the name of virtues. The civilizers ! — the disturbers, say : The robbers : the corrupters of mankind. 2. Examples of the second kind. Spare him ! Grant me this favor for once ! Let me not perish in this horrid manner ! Let me live ! Give us this day our daily bread ! For heaven's sake, permit me to go with you ! The rare occurrence of this exclamation, in books, must be my apology for so few examples, The interrogative is very scarce, but the exclamation is still more so. 3. Examples of the third hind. You are surely mistaken in that supposition ! She will certainly get lost in this wilderness of streets ! You surely will not deprive me of my only pleasure in life ! Verily, it is a wonderful thing ! Surely I have seen you in very different circumstances ! Surely it is unnecessary for a man to make a fool of himself to pass for a man of fashion ! How is this, my father ? You are not angry, sure ! What have I done ? III. COMPELLATIVE EXCLAMATORY SENTENCES. Compellative exclamations, being imperfect divisions, strictly speaking, of declarative sentences, form no exception to the rule that exclamatory sentences are delivered like the corresponding 144 THE BEND, SWEEP.-, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. declarative and interrogative from which they are derived. Pecu- culiarities, however, they have, which deserve attention. 1. Whether they occur at the beginning, in the middle, or at the end of perfect sense, they should always, with an exception to be noticed in the proper place, terminate with the bend. Ordinary divisions of imperfect sense at the end of perfect sense, terminate with partial or perfect close. 2. They are often repeated : sometimes for the purpose of being heard and sometimes not. When repeated for the purpose of being heard, the repetition is delivered with perfect close ; and every succeeding repetition is delivered in the same manner, but with increased force : when repeated, but not for the purpose of being heard, the repetition, or the last of the series of repetition, is delivered with the circumflex. Examples. 1. Of simple compellatives not repeated. Gentlemen 7 , I rise to address you on one of the most interesting subjects that can engage the human mind. Ladies 7 , the consequence of such a step on your fame and hap- piness would be too serious to be lightly incurred. Wives 7 , submit yourselves unto your own husbands, as unto the Lord. Husbands 7 , love your wives, even as Christ also loved the Church. Children 7 , obey your parents in the Lord ; for this is right. Servants 7 , be obedient to them that are your masters according to the flesh, with fear and trembling, in singleness of heart, as unto Christ. When I came here, my friends 7 , I little expected to behold a scene like this. I perceive, conscript fathers 7 , that every look, that every eye, is fixed on me. Long since, Cataline 7 ! ought the consul to have doomed thy life a forfeit to thy country. As to the wealth, Mr. Speaker, which the colonies have drawn from the sea by their fisheries, you had all that matter opened at .ue bar. To form a just estimate of Ceesar's aims, Mr. President, look to his triumphs after the surrender of Utica. You are a fool\ Harry 7 .* Your senses leave you\ Caius 7 ! Give * It is very important to observe, that the compellative is the only reason for the turning of the voice upward at the end of these sentences. Without it, they properly end with the perfect close. THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 145 me answer v , Drusus / ! Good morning*, uncle / . Good morning*, little man 7 . Stay thee\ Saladin ! Read here, young Arthur ! How now, foolish rheum ! Yes, land of liberty 7 ! thy children have no cause to blush for thee. Haughty lord ! Think not I stoop to deprecate your wrath. Unhappy youth ! Art thou a sufferer too from that same fight ? Bright angels ! strike your loudest strings : Your sweetest voices raise : Let heaven and all created things Sound our Immanuel's praise. Arise, King of grace, arise, And enter to thy rest : Lo ! thy church waits with longing eyes, Thus to be owned and blessed. Here, mighty God, accept our vows : Here let thy praise be spread : Bless the provision of thy house, And fill thy poor with bread. For heaven's sake, Hubert, let me not be bound ! Nay, hear me, Hubert ! drive these men away. Are you sick, Hubert ? You look pale to-day. How now, Rodrigo ? I pray you, after the lieutenant : go. Mon. What's the matter, lieutenant ? Gas. A knave ! — teach me my duty. I'll beat the knave into a twiggin bottle. Des. Let me find a charter in your voice To assist my simpleness. Duke. What would you, Desdemona ? Bra. Come hither, Moor. I here do give thee that with all my heart Which, but thou hast already, with all my heart I would keep from thee. — For your sake, jewel, I am glad at soul I have no other child ; For thy escape would teach me tyranny, To hang clogs on them. — I have done, my lord. Exception. Single compellatives, when at the end of very canphatic declarative or indefinite interrogative sentences, or their 13 146 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. derivative exclamations, conform to the delivery of those sen- tences ; that is, submit to the partial or perfect close of the one, or the falling slide of the other : e. g. Get thee behind me, Satan*. Hence! home! ye idle creatures*. This is all idle : there are deeds to do : Arouse thee, Procida* ! Charge, Chester* ! Charge ! On ! Stanley* ! On ! Were the last words of Marmion. Love. Get along, you impudent villain ! James. Nay, sir, you said you wouldn't be angry. Love. Get out, you dog v ! you Why tempt ye me, ye hypocrites^! 2. Of simple compellatives repeated. 1. For the purpose of being heard. John 7 , John* ! Mr. Speaker 7 , Mr. Speaker* ! Fellow-citizens'', fellow- citizens* ! Lord 7 , Lord* ! open unto us. Macbeth 7 , Macbeth*, Macbeth* ! beware Macduff ! Oh, mother 7 , mother\ do not jest On such a theme as this. Emil. [Withiii.] My lord 7 , my lord*! what! ho! my lord 7 , my lord*! Oth. What noise is this V — Not dead ? Not yet quite dead ? I, that am cruel, am yet merciful : I would not have thee linger in thy pain. — So : so. Emil. What ! ho ! my lord, my lord ! Oth. Who's there ? JEmil. good my lord, I would speak a word with you. Ham. Hold off thy hand. King. Pluck them asunder. Queen. Hamlet, Hamlet! All. Gentlemen, Hot. Good my lord, be quiet. Help me, Lysander !* help me ! do thy best To pluck this crawling serpent from my breast ! Ah me, for pity ! What a dream was here ! * This should be delivered like the exceptions above. The lady being asleep at this point, is not supposed to recollect that she has called on Lysander herel Hence repetition does not begin until the seventh line, and third Lysander THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 147 Lysander, look how I do quake and fear. Methought a serpent ate my heart away, And you sat smiling at his cruel prey. Lysander ! what ! removed ? Lysander ! lord !* What ! out of hearing ? gone ? no sound, no word ? 2. Repeated, but not for the purpose of being heard. Oh, my son Absalom! my son! my son Absalom! ! would to God I had died for thee, Absalom ! my son ! my son' ! Oh ! Raimond, Raimond' ! If it should be that I have wronged thee, say Thou dost forgive me. O Cromwell, Cromwell', Had I but served my God with half the zeal I served my king, he would not in mine age Have left me naked to mine enemies. Oh monster, monster* ! The brute that tears the infant from its nurse, Is excellent to thee, for in his form The impulse of his nature may be read ; But thou, so beautiful, so proud, so noble, — Oh, what a wretch art thou ! Reg. What ! did my father's godson seek your life ? He whom my father named ? Your Edgar ? Glo. lady, lady, Shame would have it hid ! IV. SPONTANEOUS EXCLAMATIONS. 1. INVARIABLE SPONTANEOUS EXCLAMATIONS. These are all fragments of simple declarative sentences, and, of course, are delivered like simple declaratives. (See the Rule.) Examples. See thereM beholdMf bob! lo \\ If I stand here, I saw him ! And they bowed their knees before him, and mocked him : say- ing, Hail v ! king of the Jews. * The word lorcL, being the equivalent of Lysander, is delivered as if it was Lysander ; that is, it being the second repetition, with increased force, but with perfect close. t These two exclamations are of constant occurrence in the Scriptures : they should always be delivered in the manner here indicated. 148 THE BEND, SWEEP3, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. But previously I should have mentioned the very impolite be- havior of Mr. Burchell ; who, during this discourse, sate with his face turned to the fire, and at the conclusion of every sentence would cry out, Fudge ! an expression that displeased us all, and in some measure damped the rising spirit of the conversation. Tush v ! tush v ! son, said Cecropia : if you say you love, but withal you fear, you fear lest you should offend. Tut N ! man : one fire burns out another. And he said, tut v ! tut v ! tut v ! shaking his head three or four times. Rob. I'll make all happy : I'll lower all your rents. All. Huzza ! Long live lord Robin ! Rob. You shant pay no rent at all. All. Huzza x ! huzza v ! Long live lord Robin ! Rob. I'll have no poor people in the parish, for I'll make them all rich ; I'll have no widows, for I'll marry them all ; I'll have no orphan children, for I'll father them all myself ; and if that's not doing as a lord should do, then I say I know nothing about the matter : that's all. All. HuzzaM huzzaM* Sir H. Upon my word, sir, you must beat me, or I will beat you : take your choice. Aid. S. Psha ! psha ! you jest. Pris. Hem ! hem ! Witty. He's dry : he hems : on quickly. I am your lordship's most obsequious — zounds ! what a peer of the realm ! Rosse. Let not your ears despise my tongue forever, Which shall possess them with the heaviest sound, That ever yet they heard. Macd. Humph ! I guess at it. Avaunt ! thou witch ! Come, Dromio : let us go. Mercy ! sir, how the folks will talk of it ! 'Tis not his words that shake me thus — Pish ! James. Why, sir, since you will have it, then, they make a jest of you everywhere : nay, of your servants on your account. One says, you pick a quarrel with them quarterly, in order to find an excuse to pay them no wages. Love. Poh ! poh ! Fie ! daughter : fie ! when my old wife lived, upon This day, she was both pantler, butler, cook : Both dame and servant. * Hurrah, pronounced hcoraw, is the same word, differently, but more correctly, written. THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 149 Fie ! fie ! Gratiano ! Where are all the rest ? Yes, forsooth, I will hold my tongue. So your face bids me, though you say nothing. Mum ! mum ! Hum ! hum ! And so there is no remedy f None? None. Hum ! Is this a vision ? Is this a dream ? Do I sleep ? Master Ford, awake ! awake ! Slender. Whoo ! ho ! ho ! Father Page. Page. Son ! How now ? how now, son ? Have you de- spatched ? Stew. Help, ho ! murder ! help ! Kent. Strike, you slave : stand, rogue : stand : you neat slave, strike. Stew. Help, ho ! murder ! help ! Heigh ! sirs, what a noise you make here. Heigh ! heigh ! what's the matter ? I do so : I confess it. Sir, a body would think this was well counterfeited : I pray you, tell your brother how well I counter- feited. — Heigh ho ! 'Tis almost five o'clock, cousin : 'tis time you were ready : by my troth, I am exceeding ill : hey ho ! Hey-day ! What Hans Flutterkin is this ? What Dutchman does build or frame castles in the air V 2. VARIABLE SPONTANEOUS EXCLAMATIONS. These exclamations form the only exception to the general rule of delivery ; namely, that exclamatory sentences are delivered like the corresponding declarative and interrogative from which they are derived. Strictly speaking, indeed, even these are not exceptions ; since, to be exceptions, they should be derivatives, like other exclamations ; and this they are not. They spring di- rectly from the passions, as they are exclusively employed by the passions. Though I have enumerated them among sentences, it is only by courtesy that they can receive that title. In the classification, I have therefore denominated them equivalents ; i. e. of the declara- tive and different interrogative exclamations which have so far been noticed : a name, which seems to express with perfect precision their true character. As equivalents, they are delivered exactly like the sentences for which they are substituted. 13* 150 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. Examples. I. Of Ah ! 1. Ah, Avhcn used to express surprise, suspicion, curiosity or tri- umph, is equivalent to a definite interrogative exclamation : e. g. What ! so rank ? Ah ! ah ! There is mischief in this man. 'twas most wonderful ! — Ah ! was it so ? 2. When used to express pity, it is equivalent to a declarative, or an indefinite interrogative exclamation : e. g. What a pity ! — Ah ! poor thing ! ah ! 3. When used to express sorrow, a wish, admiration, &c, it is a mere emission of sound, forming a species of key-note to the phrase, clause or sentence which follows : e. g. Ah, that same pale hard-hearted wench, that Rosaline, torments him so, that he will surely run mad. Ah, sinful nation. — Ah ! beautiful ! — Ah ! if you only had been there. — Ah ! sir, ah ! sir. Well, death's the end of all. — Ah me ! This object kills me. Mom. That I might touch that cheek ! Jul. Ah me ! Rom. She speaks ! II. Of Ha! or Hah! 1. When this expresses surprise or exultation, it is equivalent to a definite interrogative exclamation : e. g. Ha ! sure it is not so f — Ha ! sayest thou so? — Hah ! what is't thou sayest ? — Hah ! have I caught thee at last ? — Des. Well, well, Do your discretion. lago. Ha ! I like not that. Iago. You cannot, if my heart were in your hand ; Nor shall not, while 'tis in my custody. Oth. Ha ! Iago. beware, my lord, of jealousy. 2. When it expresses fear or disgust, it is equivalent to a declar- ative exclamation : e. g. Hah ! it is a sight to freeze one ! Ha ! it sickens me. 3. When employed as an imitation of laughter, it is equivalent to a declarative exclamation : e. g. Fool. Then, pr'ythee, be merry ; thy wit shall not go slip-shod. Lear. Ha! ha! ha! THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 151 Cap. Wife, go you to her ere you go to bed, Acquaint her here of my Paris' love, And bid her, you mark me, on Wednesday next But, soft : what day is this ? Par. Monday, my lord. Cap. Monday ? ha ! ha ! Well, Wednesday is too soon : On Thursday let it be. III. OiAha! or, Ah! ha! This is always an expression of innocent or insulting exultation ; and it is equivalent to two definite interrogative exclamations de- livered in quick succession : e. g. Ah ! ha ! you thought me blind : did you ? Ah ! ha ! Mrs. Ford and Mrs. Page, have I encompassed you ? Go to : via I Yea, they opened their mouth against me and said, aha ! aha ! our eye hath seen it. Let them be desolate for a reward of their shame which say unto me, Aha ! aha ! Ham. Didst perceive ? Hor. Very well, my lord. Ham. Upon the talk of the poisoning Hor. I did very well note him. Ham. Ah, ha ! — Come, some music : come, the recorders. — IV. OiEh! When an expression of surprise or curiosity, it is equivalent to a definite interrogative exclamation : when of pain, to a declarative exclamation : e. g. Eh ! are you sure of it ? Eh ! you hurt me. James. Sir, how the folks will talk of it ! Indeed, people say enough of you already. Love. Eh ! what do the people say, pray ? V. Of 0! or Oh! 1. When these exclamations are prefixed to exclamatory sen- tences expressing admiration, wonder, astonishment, love, fear, grief, &c, &c, they form, like No. I, 3, above, merely the key- note, more or less prolonged, of those sentences : e. g. O noble judge ! O excellent young man ! O, let me not be mad, not mad, sweet heaven 1 Keep me in temper : I would not be mad ! 152 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. Nurse. lamentable day ! Lady Cap. What's the matter? Nurse. Look ! look ! heavy day ! Lady Cap. O me ! me ! my child, my only life ! Revive, look up, or I will die with thee ! Oh, that the salvation of Israel were come out of Zion ! When God bringeth back the captivity of his people, Jacob shall rejoice and Israel shall be glad. Oh that I knew where I might find him ! that I might come even to his seat ! 2. When used to convey a sneer, contempt, incredulity, &c, they are equivalent to indirect interrogative exclamations : e. g. Oh, but he paused upon the brink ! He should have perished upon the brink before attempting to cross it ! 3. When employed independently to express mental or physical suffering, they are equivalent to declarative exclamations : e. g. Why, then let fall Your horrible pleasure : here I stand, your slave : A poor, infirm, weak, and despised old man. — But yet I call you servile ministers, That have with two pernicious daughters joined Your high-engendered battles, 'gainst a head So old and white as this. ! O ! 'tis foul ! Had it pleased Heaven To try me with affliction ; had he rained All kind of sores, and shames, on my bare head ; Steeped me in poverty to the very lips ; Given to captivity me and my utmost hopes ; I should have found in some part of my soul A drop of patience : but (alas !) to make me A fixed figure, for the hand of scorn To point his slow, unmoving finger at, — 0! 0! Jago. What ! are you mad ? I charge you, get you home. Emit. Good gentlemen, let me have leave to speak : 'Tis proper I obey him, but not now. — Perchance, Iago, I will ne'er go home. Oth. ! ! ! [Hanging over his wife.] JEmil. ^ a y> ^ay thee down and roar ; For thou hast killed the sweetest innocent, That e'er did lift up eye. ODesdemona! Desdemona! dead 9 Dead! 0! 0! 0! THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. ] 53 Oh ! oh ! — Sir, you'll certainly break my bones. Quick. With trial-fire touch me his finger-end : If he be chaste, the flame will back descend And turn him to no pain ; but if he start, It is the flesh of a corrupted heart. Fist. A trial : come. Eva. Come : will this wood take fire ? [They burn him with their tapers.] Falstaff. Oh! Oh! Oh! VI. Of Alas! and Alack! These two words, which are really the same though differently written, are unlike all the preceding, in being equivalent to a part of a sentence only, terminating with the bend. Its delivery is ac- curately represented by the first two words in each of the follow- ing sentences : " A lass, just sixteen years old to-day, was married this morning, at the house of her father." "Alack, I mean of rupees, is equal to fifty-five thousand dollars." E. g. Alas, the day ! I know not. — Alas ! sir, how fell you beside your five wits. Alas ! alas ! It is not honesty in me to speak What I have seen and known. Alas, what boots it with incessant care, To tend the homely, slighted shepherd's trade, And strictly meditate the thankless muse ? Alack ! how may I do it : having the hour limited ? Alack ! alack ! Edmund, I like not this unnatural dealing. Scar. I never saw an action of such shame : Experience, manhood, honor, ne'er before Did violate so itself. Eno. Alack! alack! Miscellaneous Examples of Exclamations. Some of these examples are not, correctly speaking, the simple sentences they purport to be, but rather parts of compound sentences. I wish it particularly understood, therefore, that every exclamation point separates what precedes from what follows it, into perfect indepen- dence of each other. Each is to be considered by itself, as if the other had no existence. The Rhetorical pause or dash, is here and there employed, as an additional means of separa- tion. What a spectacle ! — Behold a parent subject to the degrading influence of an ungovernable temper ! — Her very soul sickened at the sight ! — impossible ! replied Mary. — shocking ! — How very tiresome ! — And this was once a court ! thought she. — Humph ! 154 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. that's the reason people arc always glad to see them. — Fatigue ! Phoo ! I am sure I mind fatigue as little as any man. — My sweet- est Blanch, do be quiet ! I look after the pigs, Mr. Guffaw ! I am really astonished at you ! Do I look like a person made to look after pigs ? For heaven's sake, Mr. Guffaw, make less noise ! But you thought me the greatest delicacy of all ! my dear. — - You left all your other delicacies for me ! Ha ! ha ! ha ! — What do you say to that ? Ha ! ha ! ha ! Surely, my mother cannot be displeased at my attending church ! said she in astonishment. — Oh ! what a situation I am placed in ! — How fortunate ! — How excessively childish ! — There's a slap on the cheek for me ! Mercy ! how it burns ! — God's will be done ! — What ! afraid of the effects of evil example ! — shocking ! to mention pigeon-pies in the same breath with roses ! — Oh ! my friends ! how little with all my boasting have I known my own heart ! — Alas ! all earthly good still blends itself with home ! — I shall go down to posterity with the code in my hand ! — Strive now to rival him in the sacred arts of peace ! Oh ! with what a sorrowful air of forced gayety was all this uttered ! — How shall I endure it ! — Oh ! Epictetus, how ! — Pho ! pho ! nonsense, man ! I never saw you before ! — Never saw me ! Never saw me ! Is it come to this ! — Who then can be saved ! — You are not angry, sure ! — Grant me this favor for once ! — Let me not perish in this horrid manner ! — Tush ! tush ! man, I made no reference to you ! — Out upon you ! Nurse. [ Within.'] Madam ! Jul. I come anon. — But if thou mean'st not well, I do beseech thee Nurse. [ Within.] Madam ! Jul. By-and-by I come : — To cease thy suit and leave me to my grief : To-morrow will I send. And yet — yet what ? No news ! Mankind is mad ! Unheard their clock repeats the hours ! — Cold is the hearth within their bowers ! — Die for thy country ! — Thou romantic fool ! Thy country ! What to thee S— But hark ! What nearer war-drum shakes the glade ? Joy ! joy ! Columbia's friends are trampling through the shade ! It is That man of sorrow ! how changed ! What pomp ! In grandeur terrible, all heaven descends ! THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 155 Hark ! from the battlements of yonder tower, The solemn bell has tolled the midnight hour 1— Soon may this fluttering spark of vital flame. Forsake its languid frame J Miscellaneous Examples of Declarative, Interrogative and Exclam- atory Sentences. How now, brother ? Where is my cousin ? Hath he provided this music? To be whipped ! What's his fault V Wilt thou make a trust, a transgression ? The transgression is in the stealer. D. How now ? Why are you sad ? C. Sad ! I am not sad. D. How then? Sick? C. I am neither, sir. What fire is in mine ears ? Can this be true ? Contempt, farewell ! Maiden pride, adieu ! Hero. Fie upon thee ! Art thou not ashamed ? Marg. Of what, lady S Of speaking honorably ? Is not mar- riage honorable in a beggar? Is not your lord honorable without marriage ? Friar. You come hither, my lord, to marry this lady f Claud. No. Leon. To be married to her, friar. You come to marry her. Friar. Lady, you come hither to be married to this count f Hero. I do. Claud. Bid her answer truly. Leon. I charge thee, daughter, to do so. Hero. God ! defend me ! How I am beset ! What kind of catechising do you call this ? Claud. To make you answer truly to your name. Hero. Is it not Hero ? Who can blot that name with any just reproach ? Bene. How doth the lady V Beat. She seems dead. Help, uncle! Hero ! Why, Hero ! — -Uncle ! Seignior Benedick ! friar ! Leon. Fate ! take not away thy heavy hand ! Death is the fairest cover for her shame. Beat. How now, cousin Hero ? Friar. Have comfort, lady. Leon. Dost thou look up ? 156 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES A\ r D CLOSES APPLIED. Friar. Wherefore should she not ? Leon. Wherefore? Why,* doth not every earthly thing Cry shame upon her S. Could she here deny The story ? Besides all this, his children had the general advantage of a father's example. Piety in him was recompensed by peace of mind. Benevolence in him was rewarded by self-satisfaction. In- tegrity in him was crowned by the blessings of a good conscience. How natural the result ! Each became a reflection of his worth. Is not this an encouraging illustration of the power of a good li r e in purifying the domestic atmosphere ? What could be more ? The question needs no answer. Parents ! consider it well. Your own happiness is involved in this matter. This, Oh men of Athens ! my duty prompted me to represent to you on this occasion. May God inspire you to determine upon measures most expedient for the common good of our country ! Proceed then, Athenians, to support your deliberations with vigor. Has not Philip, contrary to all treaties, insulted you in Thrace ? Is he not an implacable enemy ? Indeed, what is he not ? What have you left unviolated ? By what name shall I now address you ? Shall I call you soldiers ? Soldiers ! Can I call 3 r ou citizens ? Citizens ! If I exist ? — Hah ! whence that doubt ? " We meet again this night !" — so said the spectre ! Dreadful words, be ye blotted from my mind forever ! Hassan, to your vigilance, I leave the care of my beloved. Fly to me that instant, on the approach of any un- bidden footstep to your door. I'll to my couch. Follow me, Saib. How long did he pause on the brink of the Rubicon ? How came he to the brink of that river ? How dared he cross it ? Shall a man pay no respect to the boundaries of his country's rights ? How dared he cross that river V Oh ! but he paused upon the brink ! He should have perished upon the brink before attempting to cross it ! Why did he pause ? Why does a man's heart palpi- tate, on the point of committing an unlawful deed ? Why does the very murderer strike wide of the mortal part $' [Because of con- science !] That made Caesar pause upon the J)rink of the Rubi- con ! — What was the Rubicon \ The boundary of Caesar's province. From what did it separate his province ? From his country. Was that country a desert ? No. Suffer not yourselves to be betrayed with a kiss. Let us not deceive ourselves, sir. What means this martial array ? Is it not designed to force us to submission ? Can gentlemen assign any other possible motive for it ? Has Great Britain an enemy in this * In this example, the necessity of treating why as an interrogative, is very apparent. (Ses Classification, Sec. I, 2. 2.) THE BEND, SWEETS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 157 quarter of the world, to call for all this accumulation of force? No ! Sir. She has none. They are meant for us. And what have we to oppose to them ? Shall we try argument ? Sir, we have oeen trying that for the last ten years. Have we any thing new co offer upon the subject ? Nothing. Shall we resort to humble ■supplication ? Let us not, sir, deceive ourselves longer. Blush, Grandeur! Blush, proud Courts! Withdraw your blaze, Ye little stars ! Hide your diminished rays. Fear held them mute. [Alone, untaught to fear, Stood dauntless Carl.] " Behold that rival here !" "A rat ! [a rat !] Clap to the door." — The cat comes bouncing on the floor. "What ! They admire him for his jokes ? See but the fortune of some folks ! Let Sporus tremble. What ? that thing of silk ? Sporus ! [that mere white curd of asses milk ?] Satire, alas ! alas ! can Sporus feel ! Who breaks a butterfly upon a wheel ? Booth enters. Hark ! the universal peal ! But has he spoken ? Not a syllable. Alas ! delusive dream ! Too well I know him. Give me another horse. — Bind up my wounds. — Have mercy, Jesu ! — Soft ! I did but dream.* — coward conscience ! how dost thou afflict me ! The lights burn blue. — It is now dead midnight. Cold, fearful drops stand on my trembling flesh. What do I fear ? Myself ? There's none else by.* — Is there a murderer here ? No. — Yes. — I am. Then fly. — What! from myself ? Great reason.* Why? Lest I revenge. What § Myself on myself ? 1 love myself. Wherefore ? * All these sentences have the appearance of being simple declarative sentences, and as such, seem to be at variance with the rule laid down for their delivery : inasmuch as they end with the inferior sweep. But are they declarative sentences? The first is an indirect interrogative, (with the answer implied,) put by the speaker to himself, to assure himself of the real state of things: the second, is the first part or negative of a double compact, with the affirmative op- pos'd to it understood, but implied by the next line ; which, because it contained a compound sentence, I have not inserted in the text. Adding the affirmative and subjoining the line omitted, the whole passage will read thus : There is none else by, but Richard is alone. And Richard loves Richard ; that is, I am I. The third sentence is the first part of a single compact, with the corresponding words and the second part suppressed. Written in full, it would read thus : Then fly. What ! from myself? Yet I have great reason, though I should or do not. Why ? Lest I revenge. The fourth is likewise a single compact, thus: "To the penitent, indeed, but I am not peni- tent." 14 158 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. Mess. My lord ! My lord ! [Knocking.] Hast. [ Within] Who knocks \ Mess. One from lord Stanley. Hast. [ Within] What is't o'clock ? Mess. Upon the stroke of four. War is the law of violence. Peace is the law of love. That law of violence prevailed without mitigation from the murder of Abel to the advent of the Prince of Peace. Brothers ! let us talk together of Logan. Ye aged men ! bear ye testimony to the deeds of his strength. Who was like him S Who could resist him ? Who may withstand the winds uprooting the great trees of the mountain $' Let him be the foe of Logan. Thrice in one day hath he given battle. Thrice in one day hath he come back victorious. Who may bear up against the strong man V Let the young hear me. Let them follow him. Warriors ! Logan was the father of Harold ! What ! old acquaintance ! could not all this flesh Keep in a little life ? Poor Jack, farewell ! Bal. You are, doubtless, happy in your prosperity f Far. Happy in my prosperity ! How can I be V Can pros- perity give me back my buried child ? Bal. For such a sorrow there is a divine consolation. Have you sought it ? Far. A consolation beyond my reach. I dare not seek it. Bal. Why not ? God is abundantly merciful f Far. To the penitent.* I, alas ! am not penitent. I cannot repent without restoring my ill-gotten wealth to its owners. Hence all my sorrows. Bal. Sir, you deserve them. May they not prove eternal ! SEC. II. COMPOUND SENTENCES. I. DECLARATIVE SENTENCES. 1. CLOSE SENTENCES. Rule VI. The close declarative is delivered with accentual sweeps, the bend at a intermediate pauses, and perfect close. (See Mule I, and note : also Plate, Fig. 9.) Examples. The whole multitude of them arose and led him to Pilate. They * See note on the preceding page. THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 159 who are moderate in their expectations 7 , meet with few disappoint- ments. The rocks and hills of New England will remain till the last conflagration. Rome carefully recorded these requests and intercessions 7 , and smiled to see the nations throw themselves into her arms. Rome was the greatest, the rich / est, the most powerful city in the world. And the chief priests and scribes stood and vehemently accused him. The citizens of America celebrate that day which gave birth to their liberties. The recollection of this event swells every heart with joy 7 , and fills every tongue with praise. It was then that they struck that terrible blow under which the greatness of Persia sunk and expired. Old nations, with different systems of govern- ment 7 , may be slow to acknowledge all that justly belongs to us. There are two principles, gentlemen 7 , strictly and purely American', which are now likely to overrun the world. Popular governments and general education, acting and reacting 7 , mutually producing and reproducing each other', are the mighty agencies, which, in our days, appear to be exciting, stimulating and changing the aspect of the civilized world. It is a considerable benefit of piety', that it affords the best friendships and sweetest society. To have a friend, wise and good, to whom, upon all occasions, we may resort for advice, for assist- ance, for consolation', is a great convenience in life. A late English writer has permitted himself to say', that the original establishment of the United States, and that of the colony of Botany Bay', were pretty nearly modelled on the same plan. The meaning of this slanderous insinuation is, that the United States were settled by deported convicts, in like manner as New South Wales has been, by felons whose punishment has been commuted into trans- portation. It is a principle amply borne out by the history of the great and powerful nations of the earth, and by that of none more than the country of which we speak, that the best fruits and choicest action of the commendable qualities of the national character, are to be found on the side of the oppressed few. That great man, Luther', gave an impulse to society, which it has ever since preserved. He unfolded to the wondering gaze of men', a form of moral beauty, which had been too long shrouded from their eyes by the timid dogmatism of the Papal Church. It is to protestant Christianity, gentlemen', that you are indebted for the noblest exercise of your rational powers. It is to protestant Christianity that you owe the vigor of your intellectual exertions and the purity of your moral sentiments. I could easily show you how much the manliness of English literature, and the fearless intrepidity of German speculation, and how much even of the accurate sciences of France, may be ascribed to the spirit of protestant Christianity, 160 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. It is from the influence of this spirit, that the sublime astronomy of La Place, has not been, like that of Galileo, condemned as heretical. The ambition and avarice of man are the sources of his unhap- piness. Natural dispositions, or acquired habits', regulate the-ienor of our lives. I feel your kindness', and wish for an opportunity to requite it. To the beauty of her form and excellence of her natural disposition, a parent, equally indulgent and attentive, had done the fullest justice. A man may enjoy the present and forget the future, at the very moment in which he is writing of the insignificance of the former and the importance of the latter. The dying English- man, pouring his medicine, which has paid seven per cent., into a spoon which has paid fifteen per cent., flings himself back upon his chintz bed which has paid twenty -two per cent., makes his will on an eight-pound stamp, and expires in the arms of an apothecary who has paid a license of a hundred pounds for the privilege of putting him to death. War, peace, darts, spears, towns, rivers, every thing, in short, in his writings'', is alive. Fire of imagination 1 ', strength of mind', and firmness of soul', are gifts of nature. Wit, grace and beauty, are captivating. The warbling of birds', the murmuring of streams', the enamel of meadows', the coolness of woods', the fragrance of flowers', and the sweet smell of plants', contribute greatly to the pleasures of the mind' and the health of the body. The diversity of objects, the extent of the horizon, the immense height, the coun- try like a map at your feet, the ocean around, the heavens above, conspire to overwhelm the mind. That faith which is one, that faith which renews and justifies all who profess it, that faith which confessions and formularies can never adequately express, is the property of all alike. A mind bold, independent and decisive, a will despotic in its dictates, an energy that distanced expedition, and a conscience pliable to every touch of self-interest, marked the outline of this extraordinary character. He who follows the pleasures of the world, which are in their very nature disappointing', is in constant search of care, solicitude, remorse and confusion. Notwithstanding all the pains which Cicero took in the education of his son', history informs us, that nature rendered him incapable of improving by all the rules of eloquence' > the precepts of philosophy', his own endeavors', and the most re- fined conversation of Athens. His library consisted of several volumes of sermons', a concordance', Thomas a Kempis', Antoni- nus' Meditations', the works of the author of the Whole Duty of Man', a translation of Boethius', the original editions of the Spec- tator and Guardian', Cow T ley's Poems', Dryden's Works', Baker's Chronicle', Burnet's History of his own times', Lamb's Royal Cook- THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 161 ery 7 , Abercromby's Scots Warriors', and Nisbet's Heraldry. With the newly-found continent of New Holland, she embraces under her protection, or in her possession, the Philippine Islands, Java, Sumatra 7 ; passes the coast of Malacca 7 ; rests for a short time fruitlessly to endeavor to number the countless millions of her sub- jects in Hindostan 7 ; winds into the sea of Arabia 7 ; skirts along the coasts of Coromandel and Ceylon 7 ; stops for a moment for refresh- ment at the Cape of Good Hope 7 ; visits her plantations of the Isles of France and Bourbon 7 ; sw r eeps along the whole of the Antilles'; doubles Cape Horn to protect her whalemen in the northern and southern Pacific Oceans 7 ; crosses, the American continent, from Queen Charlotte's Sound to Hudson's Bay 7 , glancing in the pass- age at her colonies of the Canadas, Nova Scotia and New-Bruns- wick 7 ; thence continues to Newfoundland, to look after and foster her fisheries 7 ; and then takes her departure for the united kingdoms of England, Scotland and Ireland. Whatever may be the obstacles which ignorance, prejudice and envy oppose to the doctrines of religion 7 , we ought never to be de- terred from propagating them. Whatever talents you may possess', whatever advantages you may have received from nature and edu- cation 7 , with whatever perfections you may be endowed 7 , expect only the suffrage of a small number of men. By ascending to an association with our ancestors 7 , by contemplating their example and studying their character 7 , by partaking their sentiments and im- bibing their spirit 7 , by accompanying them in their toils', by sym- pathizing in their sufferings and rejoicing in their successes and their triumphs 7 , we mingle our existence with theirs, and seem to belong to their age. How men have labored to disprove them ; what intellectual power and ardor and acumen, urged on by invet- erate hate, have assailed their credibility ; what stores of learning have been exhausted, what wit and what ridicule expended, to evince their absurdity ; what ferocity of godless ambition, of bigot- ed power, and even of popular legislation, have been employed to enervate, if not destroy their influence ; is well known. Those who fell victims to their principles in the civil convulsions of the short- lived republics of Greece, or who sunk beneath the power of her invading foes ; those victims of Austrian tyranny in Switzerland, and of Spanish tyranny in Holland ; the solitary champions, or the united bands of high-minded and patriotic men who have in any region or age, struggled and suffered in this great cause ; belong to that people of the free, whose fortunes and progress are the most noble theme which man can contemplate. Besides the ignorance of masters who teach the first rudiments of reading, and the want of skill, or negligence in that article, of those who teach the learned languages; besides the erroneous 14* 162 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. manner, which the untutored pupil falls into, through the want of early attention in masters, to correct small faults in the beginning, which increase and gain strength with years ; besides bad habits contracted from imitation of particular persons, or the contagion of example ; from a general prevalence of a certain tone or cant in reading or reciting, peculiar to each school, and regularly trans- mitted from one generation to another : besides all these, which are fruitful sources of vicious elocution ; there is one fundamental error in the method universally used in teaching to read, which at first gives a wrong bias, and leads us ever after blindfold from the right path, under the guidance of a false rule. From the worm that grovels in the dust beneath our feet, to the track of the leviathan in the foaming deep ; from the moth that corrupts the secret treasure, to the eagle that soars above his eyry in the clouds ; from the wild ass in the desert, to the lamb within the shepherd's fold ; from the consuming beast, to the cattle upon a thousand hills ; from the rose of Sharon, to the cedar of Lebanon ; from the crystal stream, gushing forth out of the flinty rock, to the wide waters of the deluge ; from the lonely path of the wanderer, to the gathering of a mighty multitude ; from the tear that falls in secret, to the din of battle, and the shout of a triumphant host ; from the solitary in the wilderness, to the satrap on the throne ; from the mourner clad in sackcloth, to the prince in purple robes ; from the gnawings of the worm that dieth not, to the seraphic visions of the blest ; from the still small voice, to the thunders of Omnipotence ; from the depths of hell, to the regions of eternal glory ; there is no degree of beauty or deformity, no tendency to good or evil, no shade of darkness nor gleam of light, which does not come within the cognizance of the holy Scriptures. Our immense extent of fertile territory opening an inexhaustible field for successful enterprise, thus assuring to industry a certain reward for its labors, and preserving the land, for centuries to come, from the manifold evils of an over-crowded, and consequently degraded population ; our magnificent system of federated repub- lics, carrying out and applying the principles of representative democracy to an extent never hoped or imagined in the boldest theories of the old speculative republican philosophers, the Har- ringtons, Sydneys, and Lockes of former times ; the reaction of our political system upon our. social and domestic concerns, bringing the influence of popular feeling and public opinion to bear upon all the affairs of life in a degree hitherto wholly unprecedented ; the un- constrained range of freedom of opinion, of speech, and of the press, and the habitual and daring exercise of that liberty upon the highest subjects ; the absence of all serious inequality of fortune and rank in the condition of our citizens ; our divisions into innu- THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 163 merable religious sects, and the consequent co-existence, never before regarded as possible, of intense religious zeal, with a great degree of toleration in feeling and perfect equality of rights ; our intimate connection with that elder world beyond the Atlantic, communicating to us, through the press and emigration, much of good and much of evil not our own, high science, refined art, and the best knowledge of old experience, as well as prejudices and luxuries, vices and crimes, such as could not have been expected to spring up in our soil for ages ; — all these, combined with numer- ous other peculiarities in the institutions and in the moral, civil and social condition of the American people, have given to our society, through all its relations, a character exclusively its own. The sick untended then', Languished in the dark shade, and died afar from men. In man or woman', but far most in man', And most of all in man that ministers And serves the altar', in my soul I loathe All affectation. All night the dreadless angel, unpursued, Through heaven's wide champaign held his way, till morn, Waked by the circling hours, with rosy hand Unbarred the gates of light. He that attends to his interior self, That has a heart and keeps it, has a mind That hungers, and supplies it, and who seeks A social, not a dissipated life, Has business. Through the ni^ht Of years, the steps of virtue she shall trace, And show the earlier ages, where her sight Can pierce the eternal shadows o'er her face. Late, from this western shore, that morning chased The deep and ancient night, that threw its shroud O'er the green land of groves, the beautiful waste, Nurse of full streams, and lifter up of proud Sky-mingling mountains that o'erlook the cloud. Upon the hill The tall old maples, verdant still, Yet tell, in grandeur of decay How swift the years have passed away, Since first, a child and half afraid, I wandered in the forest shade. This little rill that, from the springs 164 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. Of yonder grove, its current brings, Plays on the slope awhile, and then Goes prattling into groves again, Oft to its warbling waters drew My little feet. To the reverent throng', Grave and time wrinkled men, with locks all white, Gave laws, and judged their strifes, and taught the way of right Till bolder spirits seized the rule and nailed On men the yoke, that man should never bear', And drove them forth to battle. Then all this youthful paradise around', And all the broad and boundless mainland', lay Cooled by the interminable wood that frowned O'er mount and vale, where never summer ray Glanced, till the strong tornado broke his way Through the gay giants of the sylvan wild. His simple heart Might not resist the sacred influences', Which, from the stilly twilight of the place', And from the gray old trunks that high in heaven Mingled their mossy boughs, and from the sound Of the invisible breath that swayed at once All their green tops, stole over him, and bowed His spirit with the thought of boundless power And inaccessible majesty. His native hills that rise in happier climes', The grot that heard his song of other times', His cottage-home', his bark of slender sail', His glassy lake', and broomwood-blossomed vail', Rush on his thoughts. Each ray, that shone, in early time, to light The faltering footstep in the path of right'; Each gleam of clearer brightness shed to aid In man's maturer day his bolder sight'; (All blended, like the rainbow's radiant braid';) Pour yet, and still shall pour, the blaze that cannot fade. Whatever fruits in different climes are found That proudly rise, or humbly court the ground ; Whatever blooms in torrid tracts appear, Whose bright succession decks the varied year ; Whatever sweets salute the northern sky THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 165 With vernal lines that blossom but to die ; — These, here disporting, own a kindred soil, Nor ask luxuriance from the planter's toil. The hills Rock-ribbed, and ancient as the sun, the vales Stretching in pensive quietness between, The venerable woods, rivers that move In majesty, and the complaining brooks That make the meadows green, and, poured round all, Old Ocean's gray and melancholy waste, Are but the solemn decorations all Of the great tomb of man. This royal throne of kings ; this sceptred isle ; This earth of majesty ; this seat of Mars ; This other Eden, demi-paradise ; This fortress, built by nature for herself, Against infection, and the hand of war ; This precious stone, set in the silver sea, Which serves it in the office of a wall, Or as a moat defensive to a house, Against the envy of less happy lands ; This blessed plot ; this earth ; this realm ; this England ; This nurse ; this teeming womb of Royal Kings, Feared by their breed, and famous by their birth ; Renowned for their deeds, as far from home As is the sepulchre, in stubborn Jewry, Of the world's ransom, blessed Mary's son : This land of such dear souls ; this dear, dear land ; Dear for her reputation, through the world ; Is now leased out, (I die pronouncing it,) Like to a tenement or paltry farm. Exception. I have the same remark to make here that I made under Rule first ; namely, that indirect interrogatives, and parts of compacts, both single and double, in consequence of incorrect punctuation, are often mistaken for compound close declara- tives : e. g. You could not foresee the reception you met with. — No. Father, give me the portion of goods that falleth to me. It is surely excessively extraordinary that she should have alarmed me so much about your health, and sent me such precise instructions to take care of it. The mind may improve', may enlarge its stores of information and strengthen its powers, after a certain age'. The body having reached its maturity, falls inevitably into decay. 106 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. I admit that the evidence of this man's guilt must insure his condemnation'. Yet Ave are to consider, and consider well, what we shall do with him after condemnation. I am not the advocate of indolence and improvidence'. But I pity the poor who have become poor in consequence of disasters they could not avert. We should not bestow our faculties on a multitude of small and unimportant affairs'. This is to waste them without benefit to our- selves or mankind\ We should employ them in the pursuit of some one great and good end. The first three of these examples are indirect interrogatives : one of each kind. The suc- ceeding three are single compacts ; the parts of which should be separated by the comma, except in the first of these ; which, baying both correlative words understood, may receive the semicolon. {See Punct. of Single Compact.) The last example is a double compact, with the first, second and third proposition expressed. 2. COMPACT SENTENCES. 1. Single Compact. Rule VII. The first part of a single compact sentence, and all the members of the first part, should it comprise more than one, terminate with the bend : the second part, if it comprise but one member, must terminate with perfect close ; but if it comprise two or more members, the series must be delivered like an imperfect loose sentence. (See Imperfect Loose below, and Plate, Fig. 10.) The first part, and the members of the first part, should there be any, may be either simple or compound ; and if compound, either close or compact : the second part, and also the mem- bers of the second part, in addition to this variety of construction, may be also either perfect or imperfect loose: and hence the generality of the rule. It refers only to the termination of parts, or members of parts. The delivery of the intermediate portion of these, depends on their construction : if simple declaratives, they should be delivered like simple declaratives, in conformity with Rule I: if close, like close: if compact, like compact: if loose, like loose. I have said in the rule above, that " the first part of a single compact, and all the members of the first part, should it comprise more than one, terminate with the bend." The following cases may be regarded as exceptions to this. 1. If two compact sentences with the same correlative words immediately succeed each other, the first part of each, being in contrast with that of the other, the second first part, in- stead of being terminated with the bend, according to the rule, ends with partial close : e.g. [His style is always beautiful.] If clear 7 , you are pleased with him. If he is obscure v , you are pleased with him. 2. If the same compact sentence comprise two similar members in the first part in con- trast, the second of these members is delivered with partial close : c. g. If a good man has injured you', if a bad man has injured you\ it is all the same x : you must forgive. 3. If the last member of a series in the first part, contain an intensive particle, it should terminate with partial close: e.g. If they have wealth', if they have even a competency\ then, many think, they could be happy. Though they lost the esteem of the world', though their near- est and dearest relatives forsook them', nay, though even the sane- THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 167 tity of life itself was invaded\ yet they held to their faith unshaken : met all : endured all. 4. The last member of a series in the first part, though it contain neither contrast nor inten- sive particles, may yet, for the sake of varying the delivery, be made to terminate with partial close. Of this 1 need give no example, since the experiment may be made with any of the examples of a series, which follow under the general rule. (The delivery here recommended, conforms to the representation, Plate, Fig. 14, c.) 5. Wlien the first part, with or without a series of members, begins with the word suppose in the imperative, it terminates with partial close. In this case, however, the second part al- most uniformly comprises an interrogative : in other words, the first and second part together form a semi-interrogative. (See Rule XVIII, Note.) Examples. 1st form : with both the correlative words expressed. As it was then', so is it now. As ye have received Christ', so walk ye in him. As in Adam all die', so in Christ shall all be made alive. As soon as he sees what he never saw before', so soon does he feel what he never felt before. As the lightning that lighteneth out of the one part under heav- en, shineth unto the other part under heaven', so shall the Son of Man be in his day. As in private character adversity is often requisite to give a proper direction and temper to strong qualities', so the noblest traits of a national character, even under the freest and most inde- pendent of hereditary governments, are commonly to be sought in the ranks of a minority, or of a dissenting sect. As the admirer of painting is most offended with the scrawls of a dauber', as the enthusiast in music is the most hurt with the dis- cords of an ill-played instrument', so the lover of mankind, as his own sense of virtue has painted them, when he comes abroad into life and sees what they really are, feels the disappointment in the severest manner. As the middle, and the fairest, and the most conspicuous places in cities, are usually chosen for the erection of statues and monu- ments, dedicated to the memory of worthy men who have nobly deserved of their country' ; so should we in the heart and centre of our soul, in the best and highest apartment thereof, in the pla- ces most exposed to ordinary observation, and most secure from worldly care, erect lively representations, and lasting memorials of divine bounty. As a covetous man, whatever besides he is doing, will be carking about his bags and treasure', an ambitious man will be devising his plots and projects', a voluptuous man will have his mind on his dishes', a lascivious man will be doting on his amours', a studious man will be musing on his notions', every man according to his particular inclination, will lard his business and besprinkle all his 168 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. actions with cares and wishes tending to the enjoyment of what he most esteems and affects'; so may a good Christian, through all his undertakings, wind in devout reflections, and pious motions of soul toward the chief object of his mind and affection. As no cause For such exalted confidence could e'er Exist', so none is now for fixed despair. As men from men Do, in the constitution of their souls, Differ by mysteries not to be explained' ; And as we fall by various ways, and sink Through manifold degrees to guilt and shame' ; So manifold and various are the ways Of restoration. As one who long in thickets and in brakes Entangled, winds now this way and now that, His devious course uncertain, seeking home' ; Or having long in miry ways been foiled, And sore discomfited, from slough to slough Plunging, and half despairing of escape' ; If chance at length he find a greensward smooth And faithful to the foot, his spirits rise, He cheerups brisk his ear-erecting steed, And winds his way with pleasure and with ease' ; So I, designing other themes, and called To adorn the sofa with eulogium due, To tell its slumbers, and to paint its dreams, Have rambled wide. As when a traveller, a long day past In painful search of what he cannot find, At night's approach, content with the next cot, There ruminates, awhile, his labor lost, Then cheers his heart with what his fate affords, And chants a sonnet to deceive the time, Till the due season calls him to repose ; Thus I, long travelled in the ways of men, And dancing, with the rest, the giddy maze, Where disappointment smiles at hope's career ; Warned by the languor of life's evening ray, At length have housed me in an humble shed ; Where future wandering banished from my thought, And waiting, patient, the sweet hour of rest, I chase the moments with a serious son*?. THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES API .JED. 169 Because sentence against an evil work is not executed speedily 7 , therefore the heart of the sons of men is fully set in them to do evil. Because he saw his head higher, his arms stronger, his sword and spear larger, his shield heavier than any Israelite's, therefore he defies the whole host. For that [because] they hated knowledge, and did not choose the fear of the Lord, they would none of my counsel, they despised all my reproof, therefore shall they eat of the fruit of their own way, and be filled with their own devices. Therefore doth my Father love me, because I lay down my life. Profit is therefore so much affected and pursued, because it is, or doth seem, apt to procure or promote some good desirable to us. The gain of money, or of something equivalent, is therefore spe- cially termed profit in the language of men 7 , because it readily supplies necessity^; furnishes convenience^; feeds pleasured satisfies fancy and curiosity v ; promotes ease and liberty 1 *; supports honor and dignity v ; procures power, dependencies and friendships^; ren- ders a man somewhat considerable in the worlds and, in fine, en- ables one to do good. Because I eat and drink without luxury, banishing all foreign superfluity ; because I dress myself in a way at once comfortable, and pleasing to the eye ; because I reinstate the manly beard in its lost honor; because I withstand the privileges and prejudices of my class, and would pass for no more than I am worth ; because I believe that I have not stained myself by marriage with a maiden of lower and unhonorable descent ; because I will not establish my character by a duel, or bear about the insignia of real or feigned services, as a show upon my breast ; because I make my slaves my free companions and friends ; because I forswear deceit, and assert the truth without fear; therefore am I treated in the nineteenth century as a fool. Whereas a treaty of cession was concluded at Washington city, in the District of Columbia, by James Barbour, Secretary of War, of the one part, and John Stidman and others, of the other part, and which treaty bears date the twenty-fourth day of January, one thousand eight hundred and twenty-six 7 ; and whereas the object of said treaty being to embrace a cession, by the Creek nation, of all the lands owned by them within the chartered limits of Georgia, and it having been the opinion of the parties, at the time when the said treaty was concluded, that all, or nearly all of said lands were embraced in said cession, and by the lines as defined in said treaty, and the supplemental article thereto 7 ; and whereas it having been since ascertained that the said lines in said treaty, and the supple- ment thereto, do not embrace all the lands owned by the Creek nation within the chartered limits of Georgia, and the President of 15 170 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. the United States haying urged the Creek nation further to extend the limits as defined in the treaty aforesaid, and the chiefs and head men of the Creek nation being desirous of complying with the wish of the President of the United States'; therefore, they, the chiefs and head men aforesaid, agree to cede, and they do hereby cede, to the United States, all the remaining lands now owned or claimed by the Creek nation, not heretofore ceded, and found, on actual survey, to lie within the chartered limits of the State of Georgia. Either the mere will of the magistrate', or the conscience of the individual must decide in the case. Either he will hate the one and love the other', or else he will hold to the one and despise the other. He either thought the action so near to indifferent that he forgot it, or so laudable that he expected his friend to approve it. Neither hath this man sinned, nor his parents. Neither could he obtain the benefits which he so earnestly desired, and diligently sought, nor avert the calamities which he so greatly feared. If he', then I. If he confessed it', then forgive him. If there be no resurrection of the dead', then is Christ not risen. If Christ be not risen', then is our preaching vain ; and your faith is also vain. If, in the wanton exercise of this right, we capriciously reject the old and faithful servant, whose services have an equal claim on our admiration and gratitude , then we are tyrants. If through female encouragement and example, the spirit of this age is to be purified from folly', if it is to be elevated and adorned by excellence , then women must be sincerely and practically re- ligious. My son, if thou wilt receive my words, and hide my command- ments with thee, so that thou incline thine ear unto wisdom, and apply thine heart unto understanding'; yea, if thou criest after knowledge, and liftest up thy voice after understanding'; if thou seekest her as silver, and searchest for her as for hid treasure'; then shalt thou understand the fear of the Lord, and find the knowledge of God. If pleasure, unmixed with forecastings of retributive bitterness, is sought ; if the body is to be recruited after the exhaustion of dis- ease ; if tbe wounded spirit is to be healed after the anguish of privation, or the agony of misfortune ; nay,* if there be any hope * Not only so, but if, &c. (See Classification, Simple Declarative, Yes and No, Double Covipi Gen. Note and Ride VIII, 3.) THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 171 that reason shall resume her power after the pressure of the mind has been more than its strength ; then, the joy that bringeth no sorrow, the medicine for the disease, the balm for the wounded spirit, the asylum for the wandering mind, are found nowhere but in the sunny glades, the green canopies, and the life-imparting breezes of nature. If indeed we desire to behold a literature like that which has sculptured with such energy of expression, which has painted so faithfully and vividly, the crimes, the vices, the follies of ancient and modern Europe ; if we desire that our land should furnish for the orator and the novelist, for the painter and the poet, age after age, the wild and romantic scenery of war ; the glittering march of armies and the revelry of the camp ; the shrieks and blasphe- mies, and all the horrors of the battle-field ; the desolations of the harvest and the burning cottage ; the storm, the sack, and the ruin of cities : if we desire to unchain the furious passions of jealousy and selfishness, of hatred, revenge, and ambition, those lions that now sleep harmless in their den; if we desire that the lake, the river, the ocean, should blush with the blood of brothers ; that the winds should waft from the land to the sea, from the sea to the land, the roar and smoke of battle ; that the very mountain-tops should become altars for the sacrifice of brothers : if we desire that these, and such as these, (the elements to an incredible extent of the literature of the old world,) should be the elements of our literature ; then, but then only, let us hurl from its pedestal the majestic statue of our union, and scatter its fragments over all our land. If haply, from his guarded breast, Did steal the unsuspected sigh ; And memory, an unbidden guest, With former passions filled his eye' ; Then, pious hope and duty praised The wisdom of the unerring sway ; And while his eye to heaven he raised, Its silent waters sunk away. If the midnight bell Did, with his iron tongue and brazen mouth, Sound one unto the drowsy race of night' ; If this same were a churchyard where we stand, And thou possessed with a thousand wrongs' ; Or if that surly spirit, melancholy, Had baked thy blood and made it heavy, thick' ; Or if that thou couldst see me without eyes, Hear me without thine ears, and make reply 172 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. Without a tongue ; using conceit alone, Without eyes, ears, and harmful sound of words' : Then, in despite of brooded, watchful day, I would into thy bosom pour my thoughts. Yes, indeed', but not now. The spirit, indeed, is willing', but the flesh is weak. Bourdaloue is, indeed, a great reasoner', but his style is verbose. The harvest truly is plenteous, but the laborers are few. Innocence, indeed, possessed my heart', but it was innocence unguarded and intoxicated with foolish desires and liable to temp- tation. Ye shall, indeed, drink of my cup, and be baptized with the baptism that I am baptized with, but to sit on my right hand and on my left is not mine to give. I would not, indeed, undertake to maintain that no one can be an orator who is not a virtuous man, but there certainly is a kind of moral excellence implied in a renunciation of all effort after dis- play, in a forgetfulness of self, which is absolutely necessary, both in the manner of writing and in the delivery, to give the full force to what is said. Theirs is, indeed, A teaching voice', but 'tis the praise of them, That whom it teaches, it makes prompt to learn, And, with the boon, gives talents for its use. The mind, indeed, enlightened from above, Yiews him in all, ascribes to the grand cause The grand effect, acknowledges with joy His manner, and with rapture tastes his style' ; But never yet did philosophic tube, That brings the planets home into the eye Of observation, and discovers, else Not visible, his family of worlds, Discover him that rules them. Rather he', than I. Rather be good', than seem to be. I had rather be a doorkeeper in the house of my God, than dwell in the tents of wickedness. He chose rather to surfer affliction with the people of God, than to enjoy the pleasures of sin for a season. In the Church I had rather speak five words with my under- standing, that by my voice I might teach others also, than ten thousand words in an unknown tongue. Than prefer the temporal to the eternal with its happiness and glory, than give up the joy T find in religion, than forsake God THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 173 who has hitherto crowned my life with loving-kindness and tender mercy, and consequently who has deserved at my hands nothing but veneration, gratitude and love ; I would rather die. Greater is he that prophesieth, than he that speaketh with tongues. It is better to trust in the Lord, than to put confidence in princes. Of greater uncharitableness we cannot be guilty, than to inter- pret the afflictions that befall our neighbors, as punishments and judgments. It had been better for them not to have known the way of righteousness, than, after they have known it, to turn from the holy commandment delivered unto them. Though deep 7 , yet clear. Though he slay rne 7 , yet will I trust in him. Though Samson's hair was shorter'', yet he knew God's hand was not. Yet he said not a word of the angels 7 , though it was the inva- riable custom to do so on St. Michael's day. Although it is not true that this man intended to take the life ot his neighbor, yet it cannot be denied that he was the cause of his death. Though the bare word of an offender can never be taken against the oath of his accuser, yet it must be acknowledged that the matter of his defence was sufficiently pertinent to obtain his acquittal. Although the fig-tree shall not blossom, neither shall fruit be in the vines / ; the labor of the olive shall fail, and the fields shall yield no meat 7 ; the flock shall be cut off from the fold, and there shall be no herd in the stalls 7 ; yet I will rejoice in the Lord : I will joy in the God of my salvation. Though I bewail This triumph 7 , yet the pity of my heart Prevents me not from owning that the law By which mankind now suffers, is most just. Though from the world and worldly care My wearied mind I mean to free 7 ; Yet every hour that heaven can spare, My Armine, I devote to thee. Though thy wild heart some hapless hour may miss The peaceful tenor of unvarying bliss 7 , Yet still may hope her talisman employ To snatch from heaven anticipated joy. Though dull the close of life, and far away Each flower that hailed the dawning of the day''; 15* 174 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. Yet o'er her lonely hopes that once were dear, The time-taught spirit, pensive, not severe, With milder griefs her aged eye shall fill, And weep their falsehood, while she loves them still. When you hear this / , then fly. When this shall have occurred, then be assured their ruin is at hand. When ye therefore shall see the abomination of desolation, spoken of by Daniel the prophet, standing in the holy place 7 , then let them who are in Judea flee into the mountains. When your fear cometh as desolation, and your destruction cometh as a whirlwind 7 ; when distress and anguish cometh upon you 7 ; then shall the^ call upon me, but I will not answer : they shall seek me early, but they shall not find me. When you hear a man making any exceptions to any funda- mental law of duty in favor of some particular pursuit or passion, and considering the dictates of honor as neither more nor less than as motives of selfish prudence in respect to character, in other words, as conventional and ever-changing regulations, the breach of which will, if detected, blackball the offender, and send him to Coventry in that particular rank and class of society of which he was born or has become a member 7 ; when, instead of giving instantaneous and unconditional obedience to the original voice from within, a man substitutes for this, and listens after, the mere echo of the voice from without 7 ; then I say, that to smile, or show yourself smiling -angry, as if a tap with your fan was a sufficient punish- ment, and a " for shame ! you don't think so, I am sure," or, " you should not say so," a sufficient reproof, would be an ominous symptom either of your own laxity of moral principle and dead- ness to true honor and the unspeakable contemptibleness of this gentlemanly counterfeit of it 7 , or of your abandonment to a blind passion kindled by superficial advantages and outside agreeables, and blown and fueled by that most base and yet frequent thought, " one must not be over-nice, or a woman may say no, till no one asks her to say yes." When any fresh, any rare, any remarkable benefit happens to us 7 ; when prosperity attends our honest endeavors 7 ; when un- expected favors fall, as it were, of their own accord into our bosoms, like the grain in the golden age, springing, without our care or our toil, for our use and enjoyment' ; when we are de- livered from straits, in our apprehension, inextricable 7 , surmount difficulties seeming insuperable 7 , escape hazards apparently inevita- ble 7 ; when we revolve in our minds the favorable passages of Providence, that in the whole course of our lives have befallen THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 175 us' ; how in our extreme poverty and distress, God has raised up friends who have commiserated, comforted and succored us, and changed our sorrowful condition into a state of joy' ; has turned our mourning into dancing' ; has put off our sackcloth and girded us with gladness' ; has considered our troubles and known our soul in adversity' ; has set our feet in a large room and furnished us with plentiful means of subsistence' : how in the various changes and adventures and travels of our life, upon sea and land, at home and abroad, among friends and strangers and enemies, he has protected us from wants and dangers' ; from devouring dis- ease, and the distemperature of infectious air' ; from the assaults of bloody thieves and barbarous pirates' ; from the rage of fire and the fury of tempests' ; from disastrous casualties' ; from treacher- ous surprises' ; from open mischiefs that with dreadful force ap- proached and threatened our destruction' : when the ordinary effects of divine p-rovidence do, in any advantageous manner, pre- sent themselves to our view' ; when we peruse the volumes of story, and therein observe the various events of human actions' ; especially the seasonable rewards of virtue, the noticeable protec- tions and deliverances of innocence, and the unexpected punish- ments of malicious wickedness' ; when we contemplate the won- derful works of nature, and, walking about at our leisure, gaze upon this ample theatre of the world, considering the stately beauty, constant order, and sumptuous furniture thereof ; the glorious splendor, and uniform motion of the heavens' ; the pleas- ant fertility of the earth' ; the curious figure and fragrant sweets of plants' ; the exquisite frame of animals' ; and all the amazing miracles of nature, wherein the glorious attributes of God are most conspicuously displayed' ; then should we admire, exult and cele- brate : then should our hearts be filled with gratitude and our lips break forth in praise. When Babel was confounded, and the great Confederacy of projectors, wild and vain, Was split into diversity of tongues' ; Then, as a shepherd separates his flock, These to the upland, to the valley those, God drave asunder, and assigned their lot, To all the nations. While we are deeply moved at the awful spectacle of majesty laboring under a permanent and hopeless eclipse', then we are con- soled with the reflection that he walked in the light while he pos- sessed the light. While we were engaged in the fearful struggle which has been at length so successfully terminated', then it pleased the great Ruler 176 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. of nations to visit our aged, beloved and revered monarch with one of the most dreadful calamities incident to human nature. Even while his mother, dining her last illness, was obliged to accept of money from her physician, because she could not obtain payment of her jointure ; and while, after her decease, his two sis- ters were dunning him, every day, without effect, for the small annuity left them by their father, then, even then, he was called a good-hearted man by three-fourths of his acquaintance. Where I am', there shall also my servant be. Where the Spirit of the Lord is', there is liberty. Where the carcass is', there will the eagles be gathered together. For where two or three are gathered together in my name', there am I in the midst of them. Where you see a man meeting obstacles and removing them, struggling with difficulties and overcoming them, and still pressing forward under every discouragement, self-denying and self-relying ; there you see a man who will probably rise in the world. Wheresoever there is faith in God, there God abides. Wheresoever God is, there is awakened a zeal which urges and constrains men to perform good works. Where the olive leaves were twinkling in every wind that blew', There sat beneath the pleasant shade a damsel of Peru. There is a cave, Within the mount of God, fast by his throne', Where light and darkness in perpetual round Lodge and dislodge by turns. There is not a people on earth so abject', as to think that national courtesy requires them to hush up the tale of the glorious exploits of their fathers and countrymen. He was so filled with the desire of wealth', so engrossed by the cares of business', and, in a word, so lost to all other considerations than those of money', that the moral and intellectual welfare of his children were entirely forgotten. 2d form : with one of the correlative words expressed. As the South American states have thus won an honorable station among independent states', it becomes our imperative duty to treat them as such. As his excessive good-nature makes him take vast delight in the office', his great penetration into the human mind, joined to his great experience, renders him a wonderful proficient in it. As the authors of this race were more desirous, perhaps, of being admired than understood', they sometimes drew their conceits from THE BEXD, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES API>LrED. 177 recesses of learning not very much frequented by common readers of poetry. As the right to use the means of happiness which God has given him in such manner as he will, provided he do not violate the cor- responding rights of others, is conferred upon the individual by the Creator', it is manifest that no being but the Creator can restrict it, As it is impossible for us to conceive either how numerous, 01 how important may be our relations to other creatures in anothei state, or how much more intimate may be the relations in which we shall stand to our Creator' ; and as there can be no limit conceived to our power of comprehending these relations, nor to our power of becoming conscious of the obligations they involve' ; it is manifest that no limit can be conceived to the progress of man's capacity for virtue. He was not worthy of death, inasmuch as he hated him not in time past. Inasmuch as ye have done it unto one of the least of these my brethren, ye have done it unto me. Inasmuch as I have an exclusive right to appropriate innocently, the possessions I have acquired by the means stated above ; and inasmuch as every other man has the same right ; we may, if we choose, voluntarily exchange our right to particular things with each other. Forasmuch as many have taken in hand to set forth in order a declaration of those things which are most surely believed among us, even as they delivered them unto us, who, from the beginning, were eve-witnesses and ministers of the word ; it seemed good to me also, having had perfect understanding of all things from the very first, to write unto thee, in order, most excellent Theophilus, that thou mightest know the certainty of those things wherein thou hast been instructed. Because I live, ye shall live also. The hireling fleeth, because he is an hireling. Because I tell you the truth, ye believe me not. We know that we have passed from death unto life, because we love the brethren. Because some men have suddenly become rich by some happy accident of fortune, without labor' ; because others have been brought, by an extraordinary combination of circumstances, unex- pectedly into popular notice and esteem', and yet others have risen to eminence without showing the successive steps by which they attained it' ; many foolishly imagine that advancement goes by des- tiny ; and so they waste their lives in indulging, idly, expectations which can end only in bitter disappointment. Because this is a time of peace ; because there is a perfect calm, 178 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. except so far as an agitation among the principal manufacturers may interrupt it; because you are not subject to any coercion what- ever; I entreat you to bear in mind that the aspect of affairs may change : that we may have to contend with worse harvests than that of this year: that it may be wise to avail ourselves of the present moment to effect an adjustment which, I believe, must ultimately be made; and which could not be long delayed without engendering feelings of animosity between different classes of her Majesty's subjects. Raphael, said he, thou hearest what stir on earth Satan, from hell 'scaped through the darksome gulf, Hath raised in Paradise ; and how disturbed This night the human pair ; how he designs In them at once to ruin all mankind : Go, therefore, half this day, as friend with friend, Converse with Adam, in what lower shade Thou findest him from the heat of noon retired, To respite his day-labor with repast Or with repose. You may skim the surface of science'', or fathom its depths. You may become florid declaimed, or cloud-compelling rea- soners. Genius, intellect, imagination, taste and sensibility, must be baptized into religion / ; or they will never know, and never make known their real glory and immortal power. You may, if you please, become literary fops and dandies, and acquire the affected lisp and drawling nonchalance of the London cockney ; or you may learn to wield the herculean club of Doctor Johnson. It will be a blessing of inestimable value to the human family of every clime from the frozen regions of the north to the sunny and luxuriant slopes of the south, from the rising sun to its setting, quite round the globe ; or a disappointment of all aspirations after something nobler and purer ; something better adapted to human nature, its circumstances, wants and tendencies, than the misera- ble apologies for governments which now exist throughout the world. If any man love the world 7 , the love of the Father is not in him. If we say we have no sin', we deceive ourselves and the truth is not in us. If we confess our sins', he is faithful and just to forgive us our sins and cleanse us from all unrighteousness. If, when we were enemies, we were reconciled to God by the THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 179 death of his Son, much more, being reconciled, we shall be saved by his life. If the spirit of him that raised up Jesus from the dead dwell in you, he that raised up Christ from the dead, shall also quicken your mortal bodies by his spirit that dwelleth in you. If we are true to our country, in our day and generation, and those who come after us shall be true to it also ; assuredly, as- suredly we shall elevate her to a pitch of prosperity and happiness, of honor and power, never yet reached by any nation beneath the sun. Had our forefathers failed on that day of trial which we now celebrate 7 ; had their votes and their resolves ended in the breath in which they began 7 ; had the rebels laid down their arms as they were commanded, and the military stores which had been frugally treasured up for the crisis, been, without resistance, destroyed 7 ; then the Revolution had been at an end ; or rather it had never been begun. If we entered the world with the same reason which we carry with us to an opera, the first time we enter a theatre ; and if the curtain of the universe, if I may so term it, were to be rapidly drawn up ; struck with the grandeur of every thing which we saw, and all the obvious contrivances exhibited, we should not be capa- ble of refusing our homage to the Eternal Power which had pre- pared for us such a spectacle. Were there indeed but reason enough to stir or stagger the infidel ; were it somewhat dubious, which is far from being the case, whether punishments are reserved for impiety ; were there but any small reason for a judgment to come, as there are appa- rently very many and great ones ; had most men conspired in deny- ing Providence, as ever generally they have consented in avowing it ; were there a pretence of miracles for establishing the mor- tality and impunity of souls, as there have been numberless strongly testified by good witnesses and great events, to confirm the opposite doctrine ; did most wise and sober men judge in favor of irreligion, as commonly they ever did, and still do, otherwise ; yet wisdom would require that men should choose to be pious ; since otherwise no man can be thoroughly secure. If a multitude of parts, all manifestly relating to each other, and producing a result, which itself has as manifest a relation to the results of other proportions, cannot be observed by us with- out an irresistible impression of design; if it is impossible for us to conceive, that nine millions of alphabetical characters could fall of themselves into a treatise or a poem ; that all the pictures, I will not say in the whole world, but even the few which are to be found in a single gallery, were the product of colors, thrown at random 180 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. from a brush upon canvas ; that a city with all its distinct houses, and all the distinct apartments in those houses, and all the imple- ments of domestic use which those apartments contain, could not have existed without some designing mind, and without some hands that fashioned the stone and the wood, and performed all the other operations necessary for erecting and adorning the different edi- fices : if it be easier for us to believe, that our senses deceived us in exhibiting to us such a city, and that there was truly nothing seen by us, than to believe that the houses existed of themselves, without any contrivance; the only question, as I have already said, is, whether the universe exhibit such combination of parts relating to each other as the poem, the picture, the city, or any other object for which we find it necessary to have recourse to designing skill. If self must be denied, And sin forsaken quite''; They rather choose the way that's wide, And strive to think it right. If your ears refuse The language of his grace 7 ; And hearts grow hard like stubborn Jews, That unbelieving race 7 ; The Lord, in vengeance drest, Will lift his hand and swear, " Ye that despise my promised rest, Shall have no portion there." Had it pleased Heaven To try me with affliction ; had he rained All kinds of sores, and shames, on my bare head ; Steeped me in poverty to the very lips ; Given to captivity me and my utmost hopes : I should have found in some part of my soul A drop of patience. If servility, with supple knees Whose trade it is to smile, to crouch, to please ; If smooth dissimulation, skilled to grace A devil's purpose with an angel's face ; If smiling peeresses, and simpering peers Encompassing his throne a few short years ; If the gilt carriage and the pampered steed That wants no driving, and disdains the lead ; If guards, mechanically formed in ranks, Playing, at beat of drum, their martial pranks, THE BEND, SWEEPS SLIDES, AND CLOSES APPLIED. 181 Should'ring and standing as if struck to stone, While condescending majesty looks on ; If monarchy consist in such base things ; Sighing, I say again, I pity kings. I go 7 , but I return. Well 7 , but he fled. Yes', but with hesitation. "What you say is true', but not at all to the point. You may starve me', but you can never compel me to do what you ask. You may have a large share of these and other estimable prin- ciples 7 , but along with these many things, you may lack one thing A ; and that one thing is the love of God. You may try to darken and transform this piece of casuistry as you will, and work up your own minds into the peaceable convic- tion that it is all right, and as it should be ; but be very certain that where the moral sense of your domestic is not already over- thrown, there is, at least, one bosom within which you have raised a war of doubts and difficulties. He may be feelingly alive to the beauties of what is seen and what is sensible ; the scenery of external nature may charm him ; the sublimities of a surrounding materialism may kindle and dilate him with images of grandeur ; even the moralities of a fellow- creature may engage him, and, with works of genius, may fascinate him into an idolatrous devotion of human power or human virtue ; but while he thus luxuriates and delights himself with the forms of derived excellence, there is no sensibility of his heart toward God. Jurists may be permitted with comparative safety to pile tome upon tome of interminable disquisition upon the motives, reasons and causes of just and unjust war ; metaphysicians may be suffered with impunity to spin the thread of their speculations until it is at- tenuated to a cobweb ; but for a body created for the government of a great nation, and for the adjustment and protection of its in- finitely diversified interests, it is worse than folly to speculate on the causes of war until the great question shall be presented for im- mediate action. it is excellent To have a giant's strength 7 , but 'tis tyrannous To use it like a giant. Nature inanimate employs sweet sounds 7 , But animated nature sweeter still, To soothe and satisfy the human ear. It is a fearful thing To stand upon the beetling verge, and see 16 182 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. Where storms and lightning, from that huge gray wall, Have tumbled down vast blocks, and at the base Dashed them in fragments, and to lay thine ear Over the dizzy depth, and hear the sound Of winds, that struggle with the woods below, Come up like ocean murmurs'; but the scene Is lovely round ; a beautiful river there Wanders amid the fresh and fertile meads : The paradise he made unto himself; Mining the soil of ages. Philosophy, indeed, on Grecian eyes Had poured the day, and cleared the Roman skies ; In other climes, perhaps, creative art, With power surpassing theirs, performed her part ; Might give more life to marble, or might fill The glowing tablets with a juster skill ; Might shine in fable, and grace idle themes With all the embroidery of poetic dreams : 'Twas theirs alone to dive into the plan That truth and mercy had revealed to man. Sweet is the breath of morn, her rising sweet, With charm of earliest birds ; pleasant the sun, When first on this delightful land he speeds His orient beams on herb, tree, fruit, and flower, Glistering with dew ; fragrant the fertile earth After soft showers ; and sweet the coming on Of grateful evening mild ; then silent night With this her solemn bird, and this fair moon, And these the gems of heaven, her starry train ; But neither breath of morn when she ascends With charm of earliest birds, nor rising sun On this delightful land, nor herb, fruit, flower Glistering with dew, nor fragrance after showers, ISTor grateful evening mild, nor silent night With this her solemn bird, nor walk by moon Or glittering starlight, without thee, is sweet. Though hotly pursued 7 , he escaped. Though they soon discovered their mistake , the mischief was done. Though we, or an angel from heaven, preach any other gospel unto you than that we have preached unto you 7 , let him be accursed. In freedom, as in most things, the ancient nations made sur- prisingly near approaches to the truth/, yet for want of some one great principle or instrument, came utterly short of it in practice. THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 183 Some of them ventured boldly to sea, and possessed an aptitude for commerce, yet for want of the mariner's compass, they could not navigate distant oceans, but crept for ages along the shores of the Mediterranean. Though I would most willingly have continued a gratified listen- er, my engagements to you, gentlemen of the Adelphic Union, re- quire that I should trespass for a short time upon the patience of the audience, even at this late hour, with the utterance of some thoughts on that subject which, upon an anniversary like this, may be regarded as the only peculiarly appropriate topic of discourse. Though the blood of a Wallace had failed to purchase freedom for his country, and the conquest of Scotland had added glory to the triumphs of an Edward ; though the short-lived flame which burst from the enthusiasm of a Cromwell had served only to render still darker the succeeding political obscuration ; though the vices of a Stuart had, like the pestilential soil of Egypt, produced their swarms of devouring locusts, gilded with titles of nobility ; the battles of Saratoga, Monmouth and Yorktown, proclaimed in lan- guage not to be misunderstood, that all men are born equal ; that the right to govern, must be based upon the will of the governed ; and that, in this country, no distinctions can be tolerated, save those which flow from merit and ability. Rightly is it said, That man descends into the vale of years 7 ; Yet have I thought that we might also speak, And not presumptuously, I trust, of age As of a final eminence. The gay will laugh When thou art gone 7 ; the solemn brood of care Plod on, and each one as before will choose His favorite phantom 7 ; yet all these shall leave Their mirth and their employment, and shall come And make their bed with thee. •Though forced to drudge for the dregs of men And scrawl strange words with the barbarous pen, And mingle among the jostling crowd, Where the sons of strife are subtle and loud ; I often come to this quiet place, To breathe the airs that ruffle thy face And gaze upon thee in silent dream. Take the wings Of the morning, and the Barcan desert pierce ; Or lose thyself in the continuous wcods Where rolls the Oregon, and hears no sound, 184 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. Save his own dashing ; yet the dead are there ; And millions in those solitudes, since first The flight of years began, have laid them down In their last sleep. Though you untie the winds and let them fight Against the churches ; though the yesty waves Confound and swallow navigation up ; Though bladed corn be lodged, and trees blown down ; Though palaces and pyramids do slope To their foundations ; though the treasure Of nature's germs do tumble all together Even till destruction sicken ; answer me To what I ask you. When he rose 7 , every sound was hushed. When you look into the Bible 7 , you see holiness and purity its great characteristics. When it speaks of God 7 , it represents him as the greatest and holiest being in the universe. When it speaks of man 7 , it speaks of his primitive integrity with approbation, and of his subsequent apostacy and sinfulness, with pity and abhorrence. When my spirit shall be wafted to a more friendly port 7 ; when my shade shall have joined the bands of those martyred heroes who have shed their blood on the scaffold and in the field' ; this is my hope. When this mental disease, for so it may be called without a met- aphor 7 , seizes irrecoverably upon the thoughts of the retiring, the sensitive and timid lover of books and meditation 7 , his capacity for useful exertion is ended' : he is thenceforward doomed to lead a life of fretful restlessness, alternated with querulous dejection. When the great Earl of Chatham first made his appearance in the House of Commons, and began to astonish and transport the British Parliament and British nation by the boldness, the force and range of his thoughts, and the celestial fire and pathos of his eloquence ; it is well known that the minister Walpole, and his brother Horace, from motives very easily understood, exerted all their wit, all their oratory, all their acquirements of every descrip- tion, sustained and enforced by the unfeeling insolence of office, to heave a mountain on his gigantic genius, and hide it from the world. When in this almost prodigal waste of life, we perceive that every being, from the puny insect which flutters in the evening ray, from the lichen which the eye can easily distinguish on the mouldering rock, from the fungus that springs up and reanimates the mass of THE BEND. SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 185 dead and decomposing substances ; that every living form possesses a structure as perfect in its sphere, an organization sometimes as complex, always as truly and completely adapted to its purposes and modes of existence, as that of the most perfect animal : when we discover them all to be governed by laws as definite, as immu- table, as those which regulate the planetary movements ; great must be our admiration of the wisdom which has arranged, and the power which has perfected this stupendous fabric. When, however, we consider the wonderful connection and inter- dependence of all knowledge, made more and more manifest by every day's advance in science, so as almost to prove by an accu- mulation of particular examples the sublime hypothesis of the old philosophy, " that by a circuit of deduction, all truth out of any truth may be concluded ;" when we reflect how singularly adapted the various parts of knowledge are to the individual tastes and character of different men, so as to seize and draw them as with an irresistible mental magnetism to their several studies ; we can- not, I think, doubt that all that is most valuable in science or lite- rature, Avill find votaries among us, who, not content to make such studies the amusements of their leisure, or to devote a life of mo- nastic gloom to their solitary worship, will make or find for them a fit application. When he breathes his master-lay Of Alloway's witch-haunted wall', All passions in our frames of clay, Come thronging at his call. When the soft hand of sleep had closed the latch On the tired household of corporal sense, And fancy, keeping unreluctant watch, Was free her choicest favors to dispense ; I saw in wondrous perspective displayed, A landscape more august than happiest skill Of pencil, ever clothed with light and shade. When thoughts Of the last bitter hour come like a blight Over thy spirit, and sad images Of the stern agony, and shroud and pall, And breathless darkness, and the narrow house Make thee to shudder and grow sick at heart ; Go forth, under the open sky, and list To nature's teachings. When to the common rest that crowns our days, Called in the noon of life, the good man goes', Or full of years, and ripe in wisdom lays 16* 186 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. His silver temples in their last repose' ; When o'er the buds of youth, the death-wind blows And blights the fairest' ; when our bitterest tears Stream, as the eyes of all that loved us, close' ; We think on what they were, and leave the coming yeai-s. When man and nature mourned their first decay ; When every form of death and every woe Shot from malignant stars to earth below ; When murder bared his arm, and rampant war Yoked the red dragons of his iron car ; When peace and mercy, banished from the plain Sprung on the viewless winds to heaven again ; All, all forsook the friendless guilty mind, But hope, the charmer, lingered still behind. Where thou goest', I will go. They could not fairly pretend to reap', where they had not sowed. Where a correspondence cannot be obtained', it is necessary to be content with something equivalent. Where a community is limited in number, and forms one great patriarchal family, as in an Indian tribe, the injury of an individual is the injury of the whole. Where men speak affection in the strongest terms, and dislike in the faintest, it is a comical mixture of incidents to see disguises thrown aside in the one case, and increased on the other, accord- ing as favor or disgrace attended the respective objects of men's approbation or disesteem. Where the demands for competent ability are so pressing, and the temptations to employ that ability in such occupations as bring with them instant rewards are so great, it is quite certain that but few will be found inclined to spend their lives in studies which have no interest for others, and no perceptible bearing on private or public good. Where high the heavenly temple stands, The house of God not made with hands' ; A great High Priest our nature wears N : Our friend and advocate appears. And where his willing waves yon bright blue bay- Sends up to kiss his decorated brim, And cradles, in his soft embrace, the gay Young group of grassy islands born of him, And, crowding nigh, or in the distance dim, Lifts the white throng of sails that bear or bring THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 187 The commerce of the world ; with tawny limb And belt and beads in sunlight glistening, The savage urged his skiff like wild bird on the wing. While he is sick', he is penitent. While he enjoys prosperity', he shows good-nature. While he remained in the city, and. he remained nearly two weeks', he scarcely went abroad. While most others were solicitous to procure for themselves fame or wealth', Wesley seemed only ambitious to do good. While he delights in enterprise and action, and the exercise of the stronger energies of the soul, she is led to engage in calmer pursuits, and seek for gentler employment. While he is summoned into the wide and busy theatre of a contentious world, where the love of power and the love of gain, in all their innumerable forms occupy and tyrannize over the soul, she is walking in a more peaceful sphere. While that venerated instrument shall continue to exist ; while its sacred spirit shall dwell with the people of this nation, or the free institutions that have grown out of it, be preserved and re- spected ; our children, and our children's children, to the latest generation, will bless the names of these illustrious benefactors, and cherish their memory with reverential respect. While then we should seek, by every proper influence, to send abroad the spirit and the blessings of liberty, and hail with en- thusiasm the arrival on our shores of all men of every name, and from every clime, who love liberty, and are prepared to enjoy and preserve it 7 ; as the depositaries and sentinels of that inestimable birthright which God has conferred upon us, let us be ever erect and ever wakeful x : prepared at all times to give up all, rather than this crown of our country, and glory of our age. While we perceive with gladness the happy social uses to which nature has made the passion for power in mankind instrumental, or rather, to speak with more accuracy, the uses for which nature has made us susceptible of this passion ; and while we know well, that the world, therefore, never can be without those who will be moved by ambition to seek the honors and dignities which it is necessary for the happiness of the world that some should seek ; it is pleasing for those, whose fortune or whose wishes lead them to more tranquil and happier, though less enviable occupations, to think, that the happiness which so many are seeking, is not confined by nature to the dignities which so very few only are capable of attaining ; that it is as wide as the situations of men ; and that while no rank is too high for the enjoyment of virtue, there is no rank that can be regarded as too low for it. 188 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. And while that spot so wild and lone and fair, A look of glad and innocent beauty wore', And peace was on the earth and in the air', The warrior lit the pile, and bound the captive there. Yet while with close delight and inward pride, Which from the world my careful soul shall hide, I see thee, lord and end of my desire, Exalted high as virtue can require, With power invested and with pleasure cheered, Sought by the good, by the oppressor feared, Loaded and blest with all the affluent store Which human vows at smoking shrines adore ; Grateful and humble grant me to employ My life subservient only to thy joy. Since such is the fact', you have no cause for solicitude. Since God is a moral governor and must delight in and reward virtuous tempers', there is a manifest moral propriety in his making these tempers the antecedent to his bestowment of blessings. Since any event whatever may be the antecedent to any other event whatever', we are surely not competent to say that prayer cannot be the antecedent to the bestowment of favors, any more than to say this of any thing else. Since every impure, revengeful, deceitful or envious thought, is a violation of our obligations to our Maker, and much more, the words and actions to which these thoughts give rise' ; and since even the imperfect conscience of every individual accuses him of countless instances, if not of habits, of such violation' ; if the pre- ceding observations be just, it is manifest, that our present moral condition involves the elements of much that is alarming. Since worth, he cries, in these degenerate days, Wants e'en the cheap reward of empty praise' ; In those cursed walls, devote to vice and gain, Since unrewarded science toils in vain' ; Since hope but soothes to double my distress, And every moment leaves my little less' ; While yet my steady steps no staff sustains, And life still vigorous revels in my veins' ; Grant me, kind Heaven, to find some happier place, Where honesty and sense are no disgrace. 3d form : with neither of the correlative words expressed. It is sown in corruption' ; it is raised in incorruption. It is sown a natural bod}'' ; it is raised a spiritual body. THE BEND, SWEEP3, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 189 Were it true that the Gospel constrains men' ; its constraint would be preferable to that of fashion and vice. Affected passion, intense expression, the pomp of declamation, all may aspire after it' ; they cannot reach it. Had they informed themselves of all the circumstances, hazards and demands of the enterprise before engaging in it' ; had they after engaging in it, listened to the advice of those who were better informed than themselves' ; or had they withdrawn from it, when they discovered the obstacles to its success' ; they might have es- caped dishonor. Did faithful history compel us to cast on all England united, the reproach of those measures that drove our fathers to arms ; and were it, in consequence, the unavoidable effect of these cele- brations to revive the feelings of revolutionary times in the bosoms of the aged ; to kindle those feelings anew in the susceptible hearts of the young : it would still be our duty, on every be- coming occasion, in the strongest colors, and in the boldest lines we can command, to retrace the picture of the times that tried men's souls. Could the genius of our country reveal to our astonished view the future glories which await the progress of confederated Ameri- ca ; could he show us the countless millions who will swarm in the wide-spread valleys of the west, tasting of happiness and sharing the blessing of equal laws ; could he unroll the pages of her history, and permit us to see the fierce struggles of her fac- tions, the rapid mutations of her empire, the bloody fields of her triumphs and her disasters ; could he crowd these awful visions upon our souls ; we should see that all the prosperity that aw r aits us depends on the supremacy of mind : on the cultivation of intel- lect : on the diffusion of knowledge and the arts. Had Milton confined himself to the studies of his library or the halls of his university ; had he not thrown himself into the hottest conflicts of the day ; had he not stood forth the terrible champion of freedom of opinion and of republican liberty, raising on high his spirit-stirring voice in their defence in worst extremes, and "on the perilous verge of battle where it raged ;" had he not participated in counsel, in act, and in suffering with England's boldest spirits ; had he not thus felt in himself, and seen in others, the " might of the unconquerable will," the unshaken, unseduced, unterrified con- stancy of faithful zeal and love ; he would not have gained that insight into the seemly and generous arts and affairs, that intimate acquaintance with the nobler parts of human nature that made him the greatest of poets. 190 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES A1TLIED Doubtless he'll see us to the city gate}' ; 'Twill be the least respect that he can pay- To his fallen rival. Would I describe a preacher, such as Paul, Were he on earth, would hear, approve, and own' ; Paul should himself direct me. Hadst thou but shook thy head, or made a pause, When I spake darkly what I purposed ; Or turned an eye of doubt upon my face, And bid me tell my tale in express words ; Deep shame had struck me dumb, and made me break off; And those thy fears might have wrought fears in me. Rejecting the vain systems of the schoolmen', he adhered to the plain word of God. Seeing we also are compassed about with so great a cloud of witnesses', let us lay aside every w r eight, and the sin which doth so easily beset us, and let us run with patience the race that is set before us. Having, therefore, boldness to enter into the holiest by the blood of Jesus, by a new and living way, which he hath consecrated for us through the veil, that is to say, his flesh' ; and having an high priest over the house of God' ; let us draw near with a true hearts : in full assurance of faith x ; having our hearts sprinkled from an evil conscience, and our bodies washed with pure water. Disappointed and disgusted', they are now tempted to ascribe their disappointment to the republican institutions of their country. Trained and instructed', strengthened by wise discipline and guided by pure principle', it ripens into an intelligence but little lower than the angels. Deeply impressed with the greatness of that love of God, which is from everlasting, the herald of grace adopted a strain of impas- sioned earnestness in the invitations which he addressed to the irresolute and fearful. Vexed at the arbitrary proceedings of the assembly ; willing to escape from a town where good people pointed with horror at his freedom ; indignant also at the tyranny of his brother, who, as a passionate master, often beat his apprentice ; Benjamin Franklin, then but seventeen years old, sailed clandestinely for New York. Sent to defend an extensive mountain frontier with forces wholly inadequate to the object, the sport of contradictory orders from a civil governor inexperienced in war, defrauded by contractors, tor- mented with arrogant pretensions of subaltern officers in the royal army, weakened by wholesale desertions in the hour of danger, misrepresented by jealous competitors, traduced, maligned; the THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES Al r>LlED. 191 youthful commander-in-chief was obliged to foresee every thing, to create every thing, to endure every thing, to effect every thing, without encouragement, without means, without co-operation. A professed Catholic, he imprisoned the Pope. The orphan of Saint Louis, he became the adopted child of the Republic. Grand, gloomy, and peculiar, he sat upon the throne a sceptred hermit wrapped in the solitude of his own originality. A royalist, a republican, and an emperor ; a Mohammedan, a Catholic, and a patron of the synagogue ; a subaltern and a sov- ereign ; a traitor and a tyrant ; a Christian and an infidel ; he was through all his vicissitudes, the same stern, impatient, inflexible original : the same mysterious, incomprehensible self : the man without a model and without a shadow. At that fortunate age when the physical and intellectual powers are displayed in the highest perfection, and the hasty impulses of youth, without any loss of its vigor, are brought under control of large experience in public affairs ; with a mind capable of descend- ing to minute details, as well as conceiving a grand system of national policy ; calm and deliberate in judgment, self-possessed and fluent in debate, of dignified presence, never unmindful of the cour- tesies becoming social and public intercourse, and of political integ- rity unimpeachable ; he was admirably fitted for the post of leader of the 27th Congress. Confused and struck with silence at the deed', He flies, but, trembling, fails to fly with speed. Consulting what I feel within, In times when most existence with herself Is satisfied', I cannot but believe, That, far as kindly nature hath free scope, And reason's sway predominates, even so far, Country, society, and even time itself, That saps the individual's bodily frame, And lays the generations low in dust, Do, by the Almighty Ruler's grace, partake Of one maternal spirit^ : bringing forth And cherishing with ever constant love, That tires not, nor betrays. Seek', and ye shall find. I was hungry', and ye gave me no meat. He enjoyed fine opportunities to establish a character', and he neglected them. Seek ye first the kingdom of God and his righteousness' ; and all these things shall be added unto you. 192 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. The idea of God, it is said, may be expunged from the heart of man ; and that heart will be the seat still of the same constitutional impulses. They feel that they have incurred no outrageous forfeiture of character among men ; and this instils a treacherous complacency in their own hearts. Here is a case, in which the voice, that cometh forth from the tribunal of public opinion, pronounces one thing ; and the voice, that cometh forth from the sanctuary of God, pronounces another. Let the sinner then look to God through the medium of such a revelation ; and the sight which meets him there may well tame the obstinacy of that heart, which had wrapped itself up in im- penetrable hardness against the force of every other consideration. Let me be made to understand, that God has passed by my transgressions, and generously admitted me into the privileges and the rewards of obedience ; I see in this, a tenderness, and a mercy, and a love, for his creatures, which, if blended at the same time with all that is high and honorable in the more august attributes of his nature, have the effect of presenting him to my mind, and of drawing out my heart in moral regard to him, as a most amiable and estimable object of contemplation. Give me a man who seizes with ravenous approbation all that I have to bestow, and who hoards it, or feeds upon it, or in any way rejoices over it, without one grateful movement of his heart toward me ; and you lay before me a character, not merely unlike, but diametrically opposite, to the character of him who obtains the very same gift, and, perhaps, derives from the use of it, an equal, or a greater degree of enjoyment, to the sensitive part of his nature, but who, in addition to all this, has thought, and affection, and the higher principles of his nature, excited by the consideration of the giver. The simple truths of the Gospel may enter with acceptance into the mind of a peasant, and there work all the proper influences on his heart and character which the Bible ascribes to them ; and yet he may be utterly incapable of tracing that series of inward move- ments, by which he is carried onwards from a belief in the truth, to all those moral and affectionate regards, which mark a genuine disciple of the truth. Let him who commanded the light to shine out of darkness, shine into our hearts to give us the light of the knowledge of his own glory, in the face of Jesus Christ ; let us only look upon him as God in Christ reconciling the world unto himself, and not im- puting unto them trespasses ; let him, without expunging the char- acters of truth and majesty from that one aspect of perfect excel- lence which belongs to him ; let him, in his own unsearchable wis- THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 193 dom, devise a way by which he can both bring them out in the eye of sinners with brighter illumination, and make these sinners feel that they are safe ; let him lift off from the men of this guilty world, the burden of his violated law, and make it honorable; let him publish a full release from all its' penalties, but in such a way as that the truth which proclaimed them, and the justice which should execute them, shall remain untainted under the dispensation of mercy ; let him, instead of awaking the sword of vengeance against us, awake it against a sufferer of such worth and dignity, that his blood shall be the atonement of a world, and by pouring out his soul unto death, he shall make the pardon of the transgressor meet and be at one with the everlasting righteousness of God ; in a word, instead of the character of God being lighted up in the eye of the sinner by the fire of his own indignation, let it through the demon- stration of the Spirit be illustrated and shone upon by the mild and peaceful light of the Sun of Righteousness ; and then may the sinner look in peace and safety on the manifested character of God, GENERAL NOTE. I. The single compact sentence, with or without correlative words expressed, often appears in a fragmentary form. If either of the correlative words is expressed, the nature of the sentence and the delivery will be obvious ; for the mere fact of its being fragmentary changes neither the one nor the other. When the correlative words are wanting, the nature of the sentence may not be at once appar- ent ; and though the compact delivery should be plainly required, the cause of this, may not be suspected. I subjoin one or two ex- amples: they are printed in italic. Vol. We found you naked. Van. And you found us free. Val. Would you be temperate once, and hear me out' . Van. Speak things that honest men may hear with temper. [Enter attendant and Malek Adhel.~] Sal. Leave us together. [Exit attend.'] (Aside.) i" should know That form. Judge Bronson. Well, Mr. Cooper, but he didn't publish it. Mr. Cooper. That was not necessary to make out the libel. Judge B. (Smiling.) Pretty near it, though. The first of these examples, if complete and regularly constructed, would probably read thus : If you would, &c, then you would, &c. : the second, thus : Therefore I should know that form, because its proportions or featiues are familiar : the thud thus : Pretty near it, though that wa» not necessary to make out, i. e. absolutely necessary to make out the libel. 11 194 GENERAL NOTE. II. Single compact sentences, like simple and compound close declar- atives, are often employed as indirect interrogates with or without interrogative punctuation : e. g. Ros. YoiCll marry me, if I be willing f Phe. That would I, should I die the hour after. He admitted the validity of the will, when you produced it. Yes,, but with hesitation. 2. Double Compact. Rule VIII. The first part of a double compact sentence is de- livered like the first part of a single compact : the remaining part or parts, like the parts of a perfect loose sentence. (See Loose Sentence below.) 1. The parts separately considered may have all the varieties of construction which distin- guish the parts of single compact. (See Remarks under the Rule for the delivery of Single Compact Sentences, above.) 2. When the first part is employed in connection with the other parts and consists of two or more members, the last of these, like the last of a similar series in the first part of a single compact, may be terminated with partial close ; in which case, the delivery will conform to Fig. 14, c : (See Plate :) when the first part is employed alone, the last of the series must neces- sarily terminate with perfect close. 3. "When no or nay ends a series of members in the first part, it should always be delivered like the first member ; and the member immediately preceding it, should end with partial close. The reason of this is, that no, in such a case, to all intents begins the sentence anew. Examples. 1. Of double compact with all the parts. Swear not by heaven' ; for it is God's throne' 1 ; but let your com- munication be yea, yea ; and nay, nay x ; for whatsoever is more than these, cometh of evil. It was not an eclipse that caused the darkness at the crucifixion of our Lord' ; for the sun and moon were not relatively in a posi- tion to produce an eclipse v ; but a direct interposition of God\; for on no other supposition can we account for it. 2. With the fourth part omitted. And not as it was by one that sinned, so also is the free gift' ; for the judgment was by one unto condemnation ; but the free gift is of many offences unto justification. They had not come hither in search of gain', for the soil was sterile and unproductive^ ; but they had come that they might wor- ship God according to the dictates of their own consciences. It was not enough that our fathers were of England' ; the mas- ters of Ireland and the lords of Hindostan are of England too x ; but our fathers were Englishmen, aggrieved, persecuted and banished. We do not say that his error lies in being a good member of so- ciety' ; this though only a circumstance at present, is a very fortu- THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 105 nate one v : the error lies in his having discarded the authority of God, as his legislator^ ; or rather, in his never having admitted the influence of that authority over his mind, heart or practice. He does not satisfy himself with barely moving on to a higher point in the scale of human attainment, and then sitting down with the sentiment that it is enough ; he never counts it enough : the practical attitude of the believer is that of one who is ever looking forward : the practical movement of the believer is that of one who is ever pressing forward. It is not by an utterance of rash and sweeping totality to refuse him the possession of what is kind in sympathy, or what is digni- fied in principle ; this were in the face of all observation : it is to charge him direct with his utter disloyalty to God : it is to convict him of treason against the majesty of heaven : it is to press home upon him the impiety of not caring about God Note. In double compact sentences of this form, comprising two or more members in the first part, it is not unusual to find the second part distributed among them ; that is, to find each of these members followed by a second part of its own : e. g. It w^as not their rank which gave the apostles such marvellous success in spreading Christianity in every part of the Roman em- pire', for they sprang from the lowest order of the people^ ; it was not their wealth', for they were poor x ; it was not their learning', for they were unlettered men x ; but it was the miraculous powers with which they were endowed x ; and the wisdom of God, and the power of God unto salvation, which attended them. It is not that we wish our sister church were swept away, for we honestly think, that the overthrow of that establishment would- be a severe blow to the Christianity of our land ; it is not that we envy that great hierarchy the splendor of her endowments, for better a dinner of herbs, when surrounded by the love of parish- ioners, than a preferment of stalled dignity and strife therewith ; it is not either that we look upon her ministers as having at all dis- graced themselves by their rapacity, for look to the encroachments upon them, and you will see that they have carried their privile- ges with the most exemplary forbearance and moderation ; but from these very encroachments do we infer how lawless a human being will become, when emancipated from the bond of his own interest. I am not the panegyrist of England 7 ; I am not dazzled by her riches nor awed by her power' ; the sceptre, the mitre, and the coronet, stars, garters and blue ribands, seem to me poor things for great men to contend for x ; nor is my admiration awakened by her armies mustered for the battles of Europe, her navies overshadow- ing the ocean, nor her empire grasping the farthest east N ; it is these, and the price of guilt and blood by which they are main- tained, which are the cause w r hy no friend of liberty can salute her with undivided affections^ ; but it is the refuge of free principles, 19G THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES API'LIED. though often persecuted ; the school of religious liberty, the more precious for the struggles to which it has been called' ; the tombs of those who have reflected honor on all who speak the English tongue x : it is the birthplace of our fathers^ ; the home of the pil- grims x : it is these which I love and venerate in England. 3. With the third and fourth part omitted. We must not impute the delay to indifference', for delay may be designed to promote our happiness. The present life is not wholly prosaic, precise, tame and finite' ; to the gifted eye, it abounds in the poetic. Not all the chapters of human history are thus important' ; the annals of our race have been filled up with incidents which convey no instruction. We dare not make ourselves of the number, or compare ourselves with some that commend themselves ; for they measuring them- selves by themselves, and comparing themselves among themselves, are not wise. It is not true that the poet paints a life which does not exist ; he only extracts and concentrates, as it were, life's ethereal essence, arrests and condenses its volatile fragrance, brings together its scat- tered beauties, and prolongs its more refined, but evanescent joys. No matter in what language his doom, may have been pronoun- ced ; no matter what complexion, incompatible with freedom, an Indian or African sun may have burnt upon him ; no matter in what disastrous battles his liberty may have been cloven down ; no matter with what solemnities he may have been devoted upon the altar of slavery ; the moment he touches the sacred soil of Britain, the altar and the god sink together in the dust ; his soul walks abroad in her own majesty ; his body swells beyond the measure of his chains, that burst from around him ; and he stands redeemed, re- generated and disenthralled by the universal spirit of emancipation. It is not that Christ is set forth a propitiation for their sins ; it is not that they stagger not at the promise of God, because of un- belief ; it is not that the love of him is shed abroad in their hearts by the Koly Ghost ; it is not that they carry along with them any consciousness whatever of a growing conformity to the image of the Saviour ; it is not that their calling and election are made sure to them, by the successful diligence with which they are cultiva- ting the various accomplishments of the Christian character; there is not one of these ingredients, will we venture to say, which enters into the satisfaction that many feel with their own prospects, and into the complacency they have in their own attainments, and into their opinion that God is looking to them with indulgence and friendship. THE BEND, SWEETS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 197 Nay, look not big - , nor stamp, nor stare, nor fret ; I will be master of what is mine own. It is not now as it hath been of yore ; Turn wheresoe'er I may, By night or day, The things which I have seen, I now can see no more. Thou art no child of fancy ; thou The very look dost wear, That gave enchantment to a brow, Wreathed with luxuriant hair. Grudge not, ye rich, (since luxury must have His dainties, and the world's more numerous half Lives by contriving delicates for you,) Grudge not the cost ; ye little know the cares, The vigilance, the labor, and the skill That day and night are exercised, and hang Upon the ticklish balance of suspense, That ye may garnish your profuse regales With summer fruits brought forth by w r intry suns. 4. With the second, third and fourth omitted. You would not select the public firebrand 7 ; you would not seek your seconds in the tavern, or in the brothel 7 ; you would not in- quire out the man who was oppressed with debts, contracted by licentiousness, debauchery, and every species of profligacy. [Who, sir, were Caesar's seconds in his undertakings ?] [And what is our country $] It is not the East with her hills and valleys, with her countless sails, and the rocky ramparts of her shores 7 ; it is not the North with her thousand villages, and her harvest home, with her frontiers of the lake and the ocean 7 ; it is not the West with her forest-sea, with her beautiful Ohio, and her majestic Missouri 7 ; nor yet is it the South, opulent in the mimic snow of the cotton, in the rich plantation of the rustling cane, and in the golden robes of the rice-fields. They did not know, that every town and village in America had discussed the great questions at issue for itself, and in its town- meetings and committees of correspondence and safety, had come to the resolution that America must not be taxed by England ; the English government did not understand, (we hardly understood, ourselves, till we saw it in action,) the operation of a state of so- ciety, where every man is or may be a freeholder, a voter for every elective office, a candidate for every one ; where the means of a good education are universally accessible ; where the artificial dis- 11* 198 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLO.-'KS APrLIED. tinctions of society are known but in a slight degree ; where glaring contrasts of condition are rarely met with ; where few are raised by the extreme of wealth above their fellow men, and fewer sunk by the extreme of poverty beneath it : the English ministry had not reasoned on the natural growth of such a soil ; that it could not permanently bear either a colonial or monarchical government ; that the only true and native growth of such a soil was a perfect independence, and intelligent republicanism. 5. With the second and fourth omitted. I am not come to destroy 7 , but to fulfil. Labor not for the meat that perishetb/, but for that meat which endureth unto everlasting life. It was not enough for him to stand on the defensive 7 ; he felt that he must become the assailant, and return blow for blow. The method of our salvation is not left to the random caprices of human thought, and human fancy 7 ; it is a method devised and made known to us by unsearchable wisdom. He is not a Jew who is one outwardly, nor is that circumcision which is outward in the flesh v ; but he is a Jew who is one in-** wardly x ; and circumcision is that of the heart x : in the spirit, and not in the letter ; whose praise is not of men, but of God. We do not recognise in her the Christian who has attained to the perfect liberty of God's children, but the exact type of those souls, at all times so numerous, and especially among her sex, who, drawn powerfully to look to heaven, have not strength sufficient to disengage themselves entirely from the bondage of earth. We pay no homage at the tomb of kings to sublime our feelings, we trace no line of illustrious ancestors to support our dignity, we recur to no usages, sanctioned by the authority of the great, to protract our rejoicing^; no 7 ;* we love liberty : we glory in the rights of men : we glory in independence. His characters are not modified by the customs of particular places, unpractised by the rest of the world, by the peculiarities of studies and professions, which can operate but upon small num- bers, or by the accidents of transient fashions, or temporary opin- ions ; they' are the genuine progeny of common humanity : such as the world will always supply, and observation will always find. No wars have ravaged these lands and depopulated these villages 7 ; no civil discords havfc been felt 7 ; no disputed succession 7 ; no religious rage 7 ; no merciless enemy 7 ; no affliction of Providence, which, while it scourged for the moment, cut off the sources of re- suscitation 7 ; no voracious and poisonous monsters^; no 7 ;f all this * We do nothing like this, but, &c. ) See the Second Sentence below, and 3d Note under + It was not any of these, but all, &c. \ Rule. THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 199 has been accomplished by the friendship, generosity and kindness of the English nation. Society, in this country, has not made its progress like Chinese skill, by a greater acuteness of ingenuity in trifles' ; it has not merely lashed itself to an increased speed round the old circles of thought and action^; but it has assumed a new character'; it has raised itself from beneath governments to a participation in govern- ments^ it has mixed moral and political objects with the daily pursuits of individual men v ; and, with a freedom and strength before altogether unknown, it has applied to these objects the whole power of the human understanding. We do not pray to instruct or advise God ; not to tell him news, or inform him of our wants ; nor do we pray by dint of argument to persuade God and bring him to our bent ; nor that, by fair speech, we may cajole him, or move his affections toward us by pathetical orations^; not for any such purpose are we obliged to pray'; but because it becometh and behooveth us so to do ; because it is a proper instrument of bettering, ennobling and perfecting our souls ; because it breedeth most holy affections, and pure satisfac- tions, and worthy resolutions : because it fitteth us for the enjoy- ment of happiness, and leadeth us thither : for such ends devotion is prescribed.* Then waited not the murderer for the night', But smote his brother down in the bright day. Not for these sad issues Was man created', but to obey the law Of life and hope and action. Nor rural sights alone', but rural sounds Exhilarate the spirit, and restore The tone of languid nature. Man hath no part in all this glorious work ; The hand, that built the firmament, hath heaved And smoothed these verdant swells, and sown these slopes With herbage : planted their island-groves, And hedged them round with forests. He, who has tamed the elements, shall not live The slave of his own passions ; he, whose eye Unwinds the eternal dances in the sky, And in the abyss of brightness dares to span * The nors in this sentence are equivalent to intensive particles, (see Rule VII, Exc. 3,) but the tendency to partial close should he resisted until the last of them is reached. Tli# last member of th« first part is equivalent to no simply. (See Rule Fill, 3.)J 200 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. The sun's broad circle, rising yet more high, In God's magnificent works his will shall scan. Then let us not think hard One easy prohibition, when we enjoy Free leave so large to all things else, and choice Unlimited of manifold delights ; But let us ever praise him, and extol His bounty : following our delightful task To prune these growing plants, and tend these flowers I do not mean to wake the gloomy form Of superstition, dressed in wisdom's garb, To damp your tender hopes ; I do not mean To bid the jealous thunderer fire the heavens, Or shapes infernal rend the groaning earth, To fright you from your joys ; my cheerful song With better omens calls you to the field : Pleased with your generous ardor in the chase, And warm like you. The Sovereign Maker said, That not in humble, nor in brief delight, Not in the fading echoes of renown, Power's purple robes, nor pleasure's flowery lap, The soul should find enjoyment ; but from these, Turning disdainful to an equal good, Through all the ascent of things to enlarge her view, Till every bound at length should disappear, And infinite perfection close the scene. It is not much that to the fragrant blossom, The ragged brier should change, the bitter fir Distil Arabian myrrh ; Nor that, upon the wintry desert's bosom, The harvest should rise plenteous, and the swain Bear home the abundant grain : But come and see the bleak high hills and mountains, Thick to their tops with roses : come and see Leaves on the dry dead tree : The perished plant, set out by living fountains Grows fruitful ; and beauteous branches rise, Forever, toward the skies. 6. With the second alone omitted. Lay not up for yourselves treasures upon earth, where moth and rust corrupt, and where thieves break through and steal'* THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 201 but lay up for yourselves treasures in heaven^; where neither moth nor rust corrupt, and where thieves do not break through and steaT; for where your treasure is, there will your heart be also. Let not sin therefore reign in your mortal body, that ye should obey it in the lusts thereof, neither* yield ye your members as in- struments of unrighteousness unto sin ; but yield yourselves unto God as those that are alive from the dead, and your members, as instruments of righteousness unto God ; for sin shall not have do- minion over you. Nay'; but it's really true x : I had it from good hands, and so may you. [Officer. [What may this mean? let us pass on: we stop not. Whate'er betide.] Bayner. Nay', but you do x ; for here there is a power Stronger than law or judgment. III. THE LOOSE DECLARATIVE SENTENCE. Rule IX. The parts of a loose sentence, whether perfect or imperfect, should be successively delivered in a very slightly lower tone of voice, and terminated with partial close, except the last ; which of course ends with perfect close. (See Plate, Fig. 11, a, b, c.) The parts separately considered must, be delivered like the species or variety to which they belong ; and I need scarcely say, they may belong to any of the species and varieties of de- clarative sentences hitherto passed under review. Thus, in the first example below, we have a single compact, ~d form, in the first part, and a close in the second : in the second exam- ple, a close in the first, a fragmentary simple declarative in the second, and a complete sim- ple declarative in the third part : in the third example, we have a simple declarative in the first part, and the first part of a double compact comprising three members, in the second. State the nature of the sentences in the parts of the succeeding examples. The first part of this rule applies more particularly to loose sentences of no great length. When long, it will be found necessary to deliver them, except toward the last, nearly in the same tone. For perfect and partial close, see Ch. DLL Modulation. 1. Perfect Loose. .Examples. I speak as to wise men v : judge ye what I say. And now abideth faith, hope, charity^: these three N ; but the greatest of these is charity. Receive us N : we have wronged no man', we have corrupted no man', we have defrauded no man. I am crucified with Christ\ nevertheless I live x : yet not I, but Christ liveth in me v ; and the life which I now live in the flesh, I * See preceding note on nor. 202 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. live by the faith of the Son of God, who loved me, and gave himself for me. Go ye, therefore, and teach all nations^: baptizing them in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost x : teaching them to observe all things whatsoever I have commanded you N ; and, lo, I am with you alway, even unto the end of the world. Christians, familiar with the principles of justice, desire to see them adhered to in proceedings against others and themselves v ; but those, who are accustomed to act according to their own will, are much surprised, when required to proceed regularly and agree- ably to form and law. Liberty was theirs as men x : without it, they did not esteem themselves men x : more than any other privilege or possession, it was essential to their happiness, for it was essential to their origi- nal nature^; and therefore they preferred it above wealth and ease and country^; and that they might enjoy and exercise it fully, they forsook houses and lands and kindred. A man may be led to precisely the same conduct, on the impulse of many different principles : he may be gentle, because it is a prescription of the divine law ; or, he may be gentle, because he is naturally of a timid or indolent constitution ; or, he may be gentle, because he sees it to be an amiable gracefulness, with which he wishes to adorn his character ; or, he may be gentle, because it is the ready way of perpetuating the friendship of those around him ; or, he may be gentle, because taught to observe it, as a part of courtly and fashionable deportment ; and what was implanted by education may come in time to be confirmed by habit and experience : it is only under the first of these principles, that there is any religion in gentleness. They left all these : they left England ; which, whatever it might have been called, was not to them a land of freedom : they launched forth on the pathless ocean : the wide, fathomless ocean, soiled not by the earth beneath, and bounded, all round and above, only by heaven ; and it seemed to them like that better and sub- limer freedom, which their country knew not, but of which they had the conception and image in their hearts ; and after a toilsome and painful voyage, they came to a hard and wintry coast ; un- fruitful and desolate, but unguarded and boundless : its calm silence interrupted not the ascent of their prayers : it had no eyes to watch, no ears to hearken, no tongues to report of them : here again there was an answer to their soul's desire ; and they were satisfied and gave thanks : they saw that they were free and the desert smiled. Our object is not to recover the holy sepulchre from the pos- THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 203 session of heretics, but to make known the death of him who descended to it ; to wrest the keys of empire from the king of terrors : the weapons of our warfare are not carnal, as the sword, the spear, the battle-axe ; but spiritual, as the doctrines of the gospel exhibited in the sermons of our missionaries : the line of our march will not be marked by ensanguined fields, and the reign of desolation, but the comforts of civilization, and the blessings of Christianity : we shall not be followed in our career by the groans of dying warriors, and the shrieks. of bereaved widows; but by the songs of redeemed sinners, and the shouts of enraptured angels ; while our trophies will consist, not of bits of the cross, or shreds of the Virgin's robe ; but in the rejected idols of Pomare, with the regenerated souls of those who once adored him. If you would not like him to do it for you; then there is nothing in the compass of this sentence now before you, that at all obligates you to do it for him : if you would not like your neighbor to make so romantic a surrender to your interests, as to offer you to the extent of half his fortune ; then there is nothing in that part of the gospel code which now engages us, that ren- ders it imperative upon you to make the same offer to your neigh- bor : if you would positively recoil, in all the reluctance of ingenuous delicacy, from the selfishness of laying on a relation the burden of the expenses of all your family ; then this is not the good office that you would have him do unto you ; and this, there- fore, is not the good office which the text prescribes you to do unto him : if you have such consideration for another's ease, and another's convenience, that you could not take the ungenerous advantage of so much of his time for your accommodation, there may be other verses in the Bible which point to a greater sacri- fice, on your part, for the good of others, than 3 t ou would like these others to make for yours ; but, most assuredly, this is not the verse which imposes that sacrifice : if you would not that others should do these things on your account ; then these things form no part of " the all things whatsoever" you would that men should do unto you ; and, therefore, they form no part of " the all things whatsoever " that you are required, by this verse, to do for them. Contrasted faults through all his manners reign\ Though poor', luxurious x ; though submissive', vain x ; Though grave', yet trifling^; zealous', yet untrue^; And e'en in penance, planning sins anew. But misery brought in love x : in passion's strife, Man gave his heart to mercy, pleading long, And sought out gentle deeds to gladden life*: 204 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. The weak, against the sons of spoil and wrong, Banded, and watched their hamlets and grew strong. He who felt the wrong, and had the might, His own avenger, girt himself to slay x : Beside the path the unburied carcass lay x : The shepherd, by the fountain of the glen, Fled, while the robber swept his flocks away, And slew his babes. So spake the cherub ; and his grave rebuke, Severe in youthful beauty, added grace Invincible : abashed the devil stood, And felt how awful goodness is, and saw Virtue in her shape how lovely : saw and pined His loss ; but chiefly to find here observed His lustre visibly impaired : yet seemed Undaunted. To him, who in the love of nature holds Communion with her visible forms, she speaks A various language : for his gayer hours She has a voice of gladness, and a smile And eloquence of beauty ; and she glides Into his darker musings, with a mild And healing sympathy, that steals away Their sharpness, ere he is aware. Still Heaven deferred the hour ordained to rend, From saintly rottenness the sacred stole ; And cowl and worshipped shrine could still defend The wretch with felon stains upon his soul ; And crimes were set to sale ; and hard his dole, Who could not bribe a passage to the skies ; And vice, beneath the mitre's kind control, Sinned gayly on, and grew to giant size : Shielded by priestly power, and watched by priestly eyes, Look now abroad : another race has filled These populous borders : wide the wood recedes, And towns shoot up, and fertile realms are tilled : The land is full of harvests, and green meads : Streams numberless, that many a fountain feeds, Shine, disembowered, and give to sun and breeze Their virgin waters : the full region leads New colonies forth, that toward the western seas, Spread, like a rapid flame, among autumnal trees. THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 205 The more thou dam'st it up, the more it burns : The current that with gentle murmur glides, Thou knowest, being stopped, impatiently doth rage ; But, when his fair course is not hindered, He makes sweet music with the enamelled stones : Giving a gentle kiss to every sedge He overtaketh in his pilgrimage ; And so by many winding nooks he strays, With willing sport, to the wild ocean. Peace to the just man's memory : let it grow Greener with years, and blossom through the flight Of ages ; let the mimic canvas show His calm, benevolent features ; let the light Stream on his deeds of love, that shunned the sight Of all but heaven ; and, in the book of fame, The glorious record of his virtues write, And hold it up to men and bid them claim A palm like his, and catch from him the hallowed flame. At midnight in his guarded tent, The Turk was dreaming of the hour When Greece, her knee in suppliance bent, Should tremble at his power : In dreams, through camp and court, he bore The trophies of a conqueror : In dreams his song of triumph heard : Then wore his monarch's signet ring : Then pressed that monarch's throne, a king : As wild his thoughts and gay of wing, As Eden's garden bird. In all the modern languages, she was Exceedingly well versed, and had devoted To their attainment, far more time than has, By the best teachers, lately been allotted ; For she had taken lessons, twice a week, For a full month in each ; and she could speak French and Italian, equally as well As Chinese, Portuguese, or German ; and What is still more surprising, she could spell Most of our longest English words, off hand : Was quite familiar in low Dutch and Spanish, And thought of studying modern Greek and Danish. 18 206 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 2. Imperfect Loose. Examples. History, as it has been written, is the genealogy of princes' : the field-book of conquerors. Christianity came prepared for a gradual work' : to perform its labor as sunshine and the moisture perform theirs' : to bring its ideas to perfection among men, as the seed is brought forth to the harvest. And beside this, giving all diligence, add to your faith, virtue' ; and to virtue, knowledge' ; and to knowledge, temperance' ; and to temperance, patience' ; and to patience, godliness' ; and to god- liness, brotherly kindness' ; and to brotherly kindness, charity. Knowino- this': that the law is not made for a righteous man, but for the lawless and disobedient'; for the ungodly and for sinners'; for unholy and profane'; for murderers of fathers, and murderers of mothers'; for manslayers'; for whoremongers'; for them that defile themselves with mankind'; for man-stealers'; for liars'; for perjured persons'; and if there be any other thing that is contrary to sound doctrine. Time would fail us to recount the measures by which the way was prepared for the Revolution : the stamp-act ; its repeal, with the declaration of right to tax America ; the landing of troops in Boston, beneath the battery of fourteen vessels of war, lying broad- side to the town, with springs on thek cables, their guns loaded, and matches smoking ; the repeated insults ; and, finally, the mas- sacre of the fifth of March, resulting from this military occupation, and the Boston Port Bill, by which the final catastrophe was hurried on. We celebrate the return of a day on which our separate national existence was declared : the day when the momentous experiment was commenced, by which the world and posterity and we our- selves were to be taught, how far a nation of men can be trusted with self-government ; how far life, liberty and property are safe, and the progress of social improvement secure, under the influence of laws made by those who are to obey the laws : the day when, for the first time in the world, a numerous people was ushered into the family of nations, organized on the principle of the political equality of all the citizens. Let the young man, who is to gain his living by his labor and skill, remember that he is a citizen of a free State ; that on him and his contemporaries it depends whether he will be happy and prosperous himself in his social condition, and whether a precious inheritance of social blessings shall descend, unimpaired, to those THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED- 207 who come after him : that there is no important difference in the situation of individuals, but that which they themselves cause, or permit to exist : that if something of the inequality, in the goods of fortune, which is inseparable from human things, exists in this country, it ought to be viewed only as another incitement to that industry by which, nine times out of ten, wealth is acquired ; and still more to that cultivation of the mind, which, next to the moral character, makes the great difference between man and man. Give us the benevolence of the man, who can ply his faithful task in the face of every discouragement ; who can labor in scenes, where there is no brilliancy whatever to reward him ; whose kind- ness is that of sturdy and abiding principle, which can weather all the murmurs of ingratitude, and all the provocations of dishonesty ; who can find his way through poverty's putrid lanes, and de- pravity's most nauseous and disgusting receptacles ; who can maintain the uniform and placid temper within the secrecy of his own home, and amid the irksome annoyances of his own family ; who can endure hardships, as a good soldier of Jesus Christ ; whose humanity acts with as much vigor amid the reproach, and the calumny, and the contradictions of sinners, as when soothed and softened by the poetic accompaniment of weeping orphans, and interesting cottages ; and, above all, who labors to convert sinners, to subdue their resistance to the gospel, and to spiritualize them into a meetness for the inheritance of the saints. We know, or think we know, that God is ; and that all other existence is suspended upon his will ; and that, were it not for his upholding arm, the whole of nature would go into dissolution ; and that, while he sits in high authority over all worlds, there is not one individual member of his vast family, that is overlooked by him ; and, more particularly, that he looks with the eye of a wise and watchful judge, into every heart, and every conscience ; and that he claims a right and a property in the services of all his creatures ; and that he is more absolutely the owner and the mas- ter of them all, than is man of the machine that he hath made, and to whose touch all its movements are subordinate ; and that he is a God of august and inviolable sacredness, in whose presence evil cannot dwell, and between the sanctity of whose nature and sin, there is a wide and implacable enmity ; and that he does not sit in lofty and remote indifference to the characters of his children, but takes deep and perpetual and most vigilant concern in them all : loving their righteousness, hating their iniquity, treasuring their thoughts, and their purposes, and their doings in the book of his remembrance ; and that, with a view to the manifestation of them, on that day, when time shall be no more, and each of his account- able offspring shall have their condition awarded to them through 208 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. eternity : when the mystery of God shall be finished, and the glory of his attributes shall be made to shine forth at the close and the consummation of all things. In rustic solitude 'tis sweet The earliest flowers of spring to greets The violet from its tomb x : The strawberry, creeping at your feet v : The sorrell's simple bloom. Their flame Kindled within his breast the love of fame, And politics and country^; the pure glow Of patriot ardor x ; and the consciousness That talents such as his would well bestow A lustre on the city. The spirit of that day Through the idle mesh of power shall break, Like billows o'er the Asian monarch's chain, Till men are filled with him, and feel how vain, Instead of the pure heart and innocent hands, Are all the proud and pompous modes to gain The smile of heaven : till a new age expands Its white and holy wings above the peaceful lands. Those ages have no memory, but they left A record in the desert : columns strown On the waste sands,. and statues fallen and cleft, Heaped like a host in battle overthrown : Vast mines, where the mountain's ribs of stone Were hewn into a city : streets that spread In the dark earth, where never breath has blown Of heaven's sweet air, nor foot of man dares tread The long and perilous ways : the cities of the dead. I would trace His master-strokes, and draw from his design : I would express him simple, grave, sincere : In doctrine incorrupt ; in language plain, And plain in manner ; decent, solemn, chaste, And natural in gesture ; much impressed Himself, as conscious of his awful charge, And anxious mainly that the flock he feeds May feel it too ; affectionate in look, And tender in address, as well becomes A messenger of grace to guilty man. THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 209 Oh, leave me, still, the rapid flight That makes the changing seasons gay : The grateful speed that brings the night : The swift and glad return of day : The months that touch, with added grace, This little prattler at my knee ; In whose arch eye and speaking face, New meaning every hour I see : The years, that o'er each sister land, Shall lift the country of my birth, And nurse her strength, till she shall stand The pride and pattern of the earth ; Till younger commonwealths, for aid, Shall cling about her ample robe ; And from her frown shall shrink afraid, The crowned oppressors of the globe. Note 1. Loose sentences, both perfect and imperfect, are employed as indirect interroga- Uvea without being punctuated as such : e. g. If the means were in themselves bad, you would not say that the end justified them ; or if the means were good, you would not say that they justified all the results which might flow from their use. — No. You [surely] know the history of this man's enterprises : how his doings and observations were among the veriest outcasts of humanity : how he descended into prison-houses, and there made himself familiar with all that could revolt or terrify in the exhibi- tion of our fallen nature : how for this purpose he made the tour of Europe. Note 2. Compact sentences with the first part, only, expressed on account of similarity of construction, are sometimes confounded with perfect and imperfect loose : e. g. You would not select the public firebrand 7 ; you would not seek your seconds in the tavern, or the brother'; you would not inquire out the man who was oppressed with debts, contracted by licen- tiousness, debauchery, every species of profligacy\ [Who, sir, I ask, were Cassar's seconds in his undertakings %\ It is easy to awaken generous sentiments in privacy': to despise death, when there is no danger': to glow with benevolence, when there is nothing to be given\ [While such ideas are formed, they are felt.] 'Tis pitiful To court a grin, when you should woo a soul ; To break a jest, when pity should inspire Pathetic exhortation ; and to address The skittish fancy with facetious tales, When sent with God's commission to the heart. 18* 210 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. The first of these sentences, though apparently a perfect loose, is as it has hecn already shown, (see Rule VIII. 4,) a double compact, with the first part, only, consisting of several members, expressed: the second is a single compact, with the first put expressed, with a continuation understood something like tins: "But to awaken them in public, to despise death when facing it, to show benevolence when called upon to give, is more difficult." Indeed— but, are the correlative words. The third is also a single compact, having the » cond part understood; and having lor its correlative words, therefore— because, thva: " Therefore it is pitiful, &c., because a violation of every principle of duty and benevolence." Miscellaneous Examples of Declarative Sentences. To an American visiting Europe, the long voyage he has to make is an excellent preparative. From the moment you lose sight of the land you have left, all is vacancy until you step on the oppo- site shore, and are launched at once into the bustle and novelties of another world.* We one day descried some shapeless object drifting at a dis- tance. At sea, every thing that breaks the monotony of the sur- rounding expanse, attracts attention. It proved to be the mast of a ship that must have been completely wrecked ; for there were the remains of handkerchiefs, by which some of the crew had fas- tened themselves to this spar, to prevent their being washed off by the waves. Such was the state of Eden, when the serpent entered its bowers. The prisoner in a more engaging form, winding himself into the open and unpractised heart of the unfortunate Blennerhasset, found but little difficulty in changing the native character of that heart and the objects of its affections. By degrees, he infuses into it the poison of his own ambition : he breathes into it the fire of his own courage ; a daring and desperate thirst for glory ; an ardor panting for all the storm and bustle and hurricane of life. The succession and contrast of the seasons give scope to that care and foresight, diligence and industry, which are essential to the dignity and enjoyment of human beings, whose happiness is connected with the exertions of their faculties. With our present constitution and the state in which impressions on the senses enter so much into our pleasures and pains, and the vivacity of our sen- sation is affected by comparison, the uniformity and continuance of perpetual spring would greatly impair its pleasing effect on our feelings. Our life is compared to a falling leaf. When we are disposed to count on protracted years, to defer any serious thoughts of fu- turity, and to extend our plans through a long succession of sea- sons; the spectacle of the "fading, many-colored woods," and the naked trees, affords a salutary admonition of our frailty. It should teach us to fill the short year of life, or that portion of it which * Though sentences under this head are given in their connection, they are intended in all cases to be read and described separately and independently. THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 211 may be allotted to us, with useful employments, and harmless pleasures; to practice that industry, activity and order, which the course of the natural world is constantly preaching. Let not the passions blight the intellect in the spring of its ad- vancement, nor indolence nor vice canker the promise of the heart in blossom. Then shall the summer of life be adorned with moral beauty, the autumn yield a harvest of wisdom and virtue, and the winter of age be cheered with pleasing reflections on the past, and bright hopes of the future. Looking upon the declaration of independence as the one promi- nent event which is to represent the American system, I deem it right in itself and seasonable to assert, that, while all other political revolutions, reforms, and improvements have been in various ways of the nature of palliatives and alleviations of systems essentially and irremediably vicious, this alone is the great discovery in politi- cal science. Such has been the case with Mr. Roscoe. Born in a place ap- parently ungenial to the growth of literary talent; in the very market-place of trade ; without fortune, family connections, or patronage ; self-prompted, self-sustained, and almost self-taught ; he has conquered every obstacle ; achieved his way to eminence ; and, having become one of the ornaments of the nation, has turned the whole force of his talents and influence to advance and embel- lish his native town. Their practice of the law was not in the narrow litigation of the courts, but in the great forum of contending empires : it was not nice legal fictions they were employed to balance, but sober reali- ties of indescribable weight ; the life and death of their country was the all-important issue. The time is well adapted to the deed. It is now eight years since the corner-stone was laid, on the day that completed the half century from the battle. Let us this year urge the work to the close, with the completion of the half century since the termination of the war. If we celebrated the grand commencement of hostili- ties, in the foundation, let us bring forth the top-stone, in the happy commemoration of the return of peace. I believe, sir, as I have already said, that the work is in proper hands. I mean no fulsome compliment ; I speak what history avouches : that the mechanics, as a class, were prime agents, in all the measures of the Revo- lution. If there is any cause, in which it is right and proper to employ the social principle, the promotion of temperance is that cause ; for intemperance, in its origin, is peculiarly a social vice. Although, in its progress, men may creep away, out of shame, to indulge the depraved appetite in secret ; yet no man, in a state of civilization, 212 THE BEND, SWEEiS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. is born, I imagine, with a taste so unnatural that he seeks an in- toxicating liquor, in the outset, for his ordinary drink. The maxims of temperance are not new ; they are as old as Christianity : as old as any of the inculcations of personal and social duty. Every other instrument of moral censure had been tried, in the case of intemperance, as in that of other prevailing errors, vices and crimes. The law had done something, the press had done something, the stated ministrations of religion had done something, but all together had done little ; and intemperance had reached a most alarming degree of prevalence. At length the principle of association was applied ; societies were formed ; meetings were held ; public addresses made ; information collected and commu- nicated ; pledges mutually given ; the minds of men excited and their hearts warmed, by comparison of opinions : by concert and sympathy ; and within the space of twenty years, of which not more than ten have been devoted to strenuous effort, a most signal and unexampled reform has been achieved. When public bodies are to be addressed on momentous occa- sions, when great interests are at stake, and strong passions excited, nothing is valuable in speech, farther than it is connected with high intellectual and moral endowments. Clearness, force and earnest- ness are the qualities which produce conviction. True eloquence indeed does not consist in speech ; it cannot be brought from far. Labor and learning may toil for it, but they toil for it in vain : words and phrases may be marshalled in every way, but they cannot compass it : it must exist in the man ; in the subject ; and in the occasion. Affected passion, intense expression, the pomp of decla- mation, — all may aspire after it ; they cannot reach it : it comes, if it come at all, like the outbreaking of a fountain from the earth or the bursting forth of volcanic fires, with spontaneous, original, native force. The hour of retribution is at length arrived. He who had no mercy upon others, is now reduced to a condition which may excite the pity of his most implacable enemy : he who has made so many miserable, is now condemned to drink, to the very dregs, the bitter cup of degradation and sorrow. I speak not now of the public employment of informers, with a promise of secrecy and extravagant reward ; I speak not of the fate of those horrid wretches who have been so often transferred from the table to the dock, and from the dock to the pillory ; I speak of what your own eyes have seen, day after day, during the course of this commission, from the box where you are now sitting. As it is not a vain and false, but an exalted and religious imagi- nation, which leads us to raise our thoughts from the orb which, amidst this universe of worlds, the Creator has given us to inhabit, THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 213 and to send them, with something of the feeling which nature prompts and teaches to be proper among children of the same Eternal Parent, to the contemplation of the myriads of fellow-beings, with which his goodness has peopled infinite space ; so neither is it false or vain to consider ourselves as interested or connected with our whole race through all time. They solicit them in one manner, and they execute them in another. They set out with a great appearance of activity, hu- mility and moderation ; and they quickly fall into sloth, pride and avarice. Grateful for the indulgence with which they were favored, and thankful for the patience and politeness with which they were honored ; they should certainly be the last to condemn that, in which they themselves were the greatest transgressors. To carry on with effect an expensive war, and yet be frugal of the public money ; to oblige those to serve, whom it may be deli- cate to offend ; to conduct, at the same time, a complicated variety of operations ; to concert measures at home, answerable to the state of things abroad ; and to gain every valuable end, in spite of opposition from the envious and disaffected ; — this is more difficult than is generally thought. As the Father knoweth me, even so know I the Father ; and I lay down my life for the sheep. Other sheep I have, which are not of this fold : them also must I bring ; and they shall hear my voice ; and there shall be one fold and one shepherd. Therefore doth my Father love me, because I lay down my life that I might take it again. No man taketh it from me, but I lay it down of myself. I have power to lay it down, and I have power to take it again. This commandment have I received of my Father. It is no uncommon circumstance in controversy, for the parties to engage in all the fury of disputation, without precisely knowing, themselves, the particulars about which they differ. Hence that fruitless parade of argument, and those opposite pretences to de- monstration, with which most debates, on every subject, have been infested. Would the contending parties first be sure of their own meaning, and then communicate their sense to others in plain terms and simplicity of heart, the face of controversy would soon be changed ; and real knowledge, instead of imaginary conquest, would be the noble reward of literary toil. If thou art a child, and hast ever added a sorrow to the soul or a furrow to the silvered brow of an affectionate parent ; if thou art a husband, and hast ever caused the fond bosom that ventured its whole happiness in thy arms, to doubt one moment of thy kindness or thy truth; if thou art a friend, and hast ever wronged m thought, or word or deed, the spirit that generously confided in thee : 214 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AM) CLOSES APPLIED. if thou art a lover, and hast ever given one unmerited pang to that true heart that now lies cold and still beneath thy feet; then be sure that eveiy unkind look, every ungracious word, every un- gentle action, will come thronging back upon thy memory, and knocking dolefully at thy soul : then be sure that thou wilt lie down sorrowing and repenting on the grave, and utter the unheard groan, and pour the unavailing tear ; more deep, more bitter, be- cause unavailing. But the pious man is, like Scipio, never less alone than when alone: his solitude and retirement are not only tolerable, but commonly the most grateful part of his life : he can ever with much pleasure, and more advantage, converse with himself : digesting and mar- shalling his thoughts, his affections, his purposes, into good order : searching and discussing his heart : reflecting on his past ways : enforcing his former good resolutions, and framing new ones : in- quiring after edifying truths : stretching his meditations toward the best and the sublimest objects: raising his hopes, and warm- ing his affections towards spiritual and heavenly things : asking himself pertinent questions, and resolving incidental doubts con- cerning his practice : in fine, conversing with his best Friend in devotion: with admiration and love contemplating the divine per- fections displayed in the works of nature, of providence, of grace : praising God for his excellent benefits and mercies : confessing his defects and offences : deprecating wrath and imploring pardon, with grace and ability to amend : praying for the supply of all his w T ants. The prophecy will obtain its fulfilment, but not till the fulfilment of the verses which go before it : not till the influence of the gos- pel has found its way to the human bosom, and plucked out of it the elementary principles of w r ar : not till the law of love shall spread its melting and all-subduing efficacy among the children of one common nature : not till ambition be dethroned from its mas- tery over the affections of the inner man : not till the guilty splen- dors of war shall cease to captivate its admirers, and spread the blaze of a deceitful heroism over the wholesale butchery of the species : not till national pride be humbled, and man shall learn that if it be individually the duty of each of us in honor to prefer one another, then let these individuals combine as they may, and form societies as numerous and extensive as they may, and each of these be swelled out to the dimensions of an empire, still, that mutual condescension and forbearance remain the unalterable Christian duties of these empires to each other: not till man learn to revere his brother as man, whatever portion of the globe he oc- cupies, and all the jealousies and preferences of a contracted pat- riotism be given to the wind : not till war shall cease to be prose- THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 215 cuted as a trade, and the charm of al] that interest which is linked with its continuance, shall cense to beguile men in the peaceful ■walks of merchandise, into a barbarous longing- after war : not, in one word, till pride, and jealousy, and interest, and all that is op- posite to the law of God, and the chanty of the gospel, shall be for- ever eradicated from the character of those who possess an effectual control over the public and political movements of the species: not till all this be brought about ; (and there is not another agent in the whole compass of nature that can bring it about but the gos- pel of Christ, carried home by the all-subduing power of the Spirit to the consciences of men :) — then,* and not till then, will peace come to take up its perennial abode with us, and its blessed advent on earth be hailed by one shout of joyful acclamation throughout all its families : then, and not till then, will the sacred principle of good-will to men circulate as free as the air of heaven among all countries ; and the sun, looking out from the firmament, will be- hold one fine aspect of harmony throughout the wide extent of a regenerated world. We have been discoursing of infancy, childhood, boyhood, and youth ; of pleasures lying upon the unfolding intellect plenteously as morning dew-drops of knowledge inhaled insensibly like fra- grance ; of dispositions stealing into the spirit like music from un- known quarters ; of images uncalled for, and rising up like exha- lations ; of hopes plucked, like beautiful wildflowers from the ruined tombs that border the highways of antiquity, to make a garland for a living forehead : in a word, we have been treating of nature as a teacher of truth through joy and through gladness, and as a creatress of the faculties by a process of smoothness and delight. We have made no mention of fear, shame, sorrow, nor of ungovernable and vexing thoughts ; because, although these have been, and have done mighty service, they are overlooked in that stage of life, when youth is passing into manhood : overlooked, or forgotten. Unnatural must be that son, and hard his heart, who, after hav- ing received from parental love and care, his life, protection, and sustenance, the nurture of the body, and the culture of the soul, could coldly turn away from the hearth of his father and mother, when old age was gathering around them, and their powers were ia decay, and their path beset with danger and infirmity, and leave * The following is manifestly understood before this word : " but. when it shall be brought about." Strictly speaking, " brought about" was intended by the writer to be followed by '• will peace, &c. ;" but the parenthesis presented itself, and subsequently, under the influ- ence of his emotions, he forgot the previous structure, and broke iu with, "then, and not till then." These noble negligences are characteristic of all great minds. They will be found alike in Demosthenes, Cicero, Paul, Webster, and Chalmers, the author of the sentence undei consideration. 216 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. them unnoticed and unhonored, to descend the painful declivity ot life into a sepulchre of sorrow. The effect of this devotion of elegant minds to rural occupations, has been wonderful on the face of the country. A ball of wood could not be thus softened by blows. I cut it open. He slept. Once more unto the breach, my friends, once more, Or close the wall up with our English dead. Since plays are but a kind of public feasts, Where tickets only make the welcome guests ; Methinks, instead of grace, we should prepare Your taste in prologue, with your bill of fare. Were you but half so humble to confess, As you are wise to know, your happiness ; Our author would not grieve to see you sit Ruling, with such unquestioned power, his wit. Swans sing before they die : 'Twere no bad thing, Should certain persons die before they sing. I had a thing to say, but let it go. Would he were fatter, but I fear him not. Protected by that hand, whose law The threatening storms obey, Intrepid virtue smiles secure, As in the blaze of day. You are meek and humble mouthed ; You sign your place and calling, in full seeming With meekness and humility ; but your heart Is crammed with arrogance, spleen and pride. Were I crowned the most imperial monarch, Thereof most worthy ; were I the fairest youth, That ever made eye swerve ; had force and knowledge More than was ever man's ; I would not prize them Without her love. I were, indeed, indifferent to fame, Grudging two lines to immortalize my name. While malice, Pope, denies thy page Its own celestial fire ; While critics and while bards in rage, Admiring, won't admire ; THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 217 While wayward pens thy works assail, And envious tongues decry ; These times, though many a friend bewail, These times bewail not I. Beauty is but a vain, a fleeting good : A shining gloss that fadeth suddenly : A flower that dies when almost in the bud : A brittle glass that breaketh presently : A fleeting good, a glass, a gloss, a flower, Lost, faded, broken, dead, within the hour. As goods, when lost, we know are seldom found, As fading gloss no rubbing can excite, As flowers when dead are trampled on the ground, As broken glass no cement can unite, So beauty, blemished once, is ever lost, In spite of physic, painting, pains and cost. Where yon old trees bend o'er a place of graves, And solemn shade a chapel's sad remains ; Where yon scathed poplar through the window waves, And, twining round, the hoary arch sustains ; There oft, at dawn, as one forgot behind, Who longs to follow, yet unknowing where, Some hoary shepherd, o'er his staff reclined, Pores on the graves, and sighs a broken prayer. To wake the soul by tender strokes of art ; To raise the genius, and to mend the heart ; To make mankind in conscious virtue bold, Live o'er the scene, and be what they behold ; — For this the tragic muse first trod the stage : Commanding tears to stream through every age. There various news I heard of love and strife : Of peace and war, health, sickness, death and life : Of loss and gain : of famine, and of store : Of storms at sea, and travels on the shore : Of prodigies and portents in the air : Of fires and plagues, and stars with blazing hair: Of turns of fortune ; changes in the state ; The" falls of favorites ; projects of the great : Of old mismanagements ; taxations new : All neither irnollv false, nor wholly true. 19 218 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES ANI CLOSES APPLIED By the fair and brave Who, blushing, unite, Like the sun and wave When they meet at night ; By the tear that shows When passion is nigh, As the rain-drop flows From the heat of the sky ; By the first love beat Of the youthful heart ; By the bliss to meet, And the pain to part ; By all that thou hast To mortals given, Which could it but last, This earth were heaven ; We call thee hither, entrancing power. The low of herds Blends with the rustling of the heavy grain Over the dark-brown furrows. Did sweeter sounds adorn my flowing tongue, Than ever man pronounced, or angel sung ; Had I all knowledge, human and divine, That thought can reach, or science can define ; And had I power to give that knowledge birth, In all the speeches of the babbling earth ; Did Shadrach's zeal my glowing breast inspire To weary tortures, and rejoice in fire ; Or had I faith like that w T hich Israel saw, When Moses gave them miracles and law ; Yet, gracious Charity, indulgent guest, Were not thy power exerted in my breast, That scorn of life would be but wild despair: A cymbal's sound were better than my voice : My faith were form : my eloquence were noise. There is not in the wide world a valley so sweet, As that vale in whose bosom the blight waters meet : Oh ! the last rays of feeling and life must depart, Ere the bloom of that valley shall fade from my heart. Yet it was not that nature had shed o'er the scene Her purest of crystal and brightest of green ; 'Twas not the soft magic of streamlet and hill ; THE BEND. SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 219 Oh ! no ;* it was something- more exquisite still : 'Twas, that friends, the beloved of my bosom, were near, Who made each scene of enchantment more dear ; And who felt how the blessed charms of nature improve, When we see them reflected from looks that we love. Thou art not noble, For all the accommodations that thou bearest, Are nursed by baseness : thou art by no means valiant, For thou dost fear the soft and tender fork Of a poor worm. The best of rest is sleep ; And that thou oft provokest, yet grossly fearest Thy death, which is no more. Thou art not thyself, For thou existest on many a thousand grains, That issue out of dust : happy thou art not, For what thou hast not, still thou strivest to get ; And what thou hast, forgettest : thou art not certain, For thy complexion shifts to strange effects, After the moon. If thou art rich, thou'rt poor ; For, like an ass whose back with ingots bows, Thou bearest thy heavy liches but a journey, And death unloads thee. Friend thou hast none, For thine own bowels, which do call thee sire, The mere effusion of thy proper loins, Do curse the gout, serpigo, and the rheum, For ending thee no sooner : thou hast nor youth nor age, But, as it were, an after-dinner sleep, Dreaming on both ; for all thy blessed youth Becomes as aged, and doth beg the alms Of palsied eld ; and when thou art old and rich, Thou hast neither heat, affection, limb, nor beauty, To make thy riches pleasant. Love and awe Mingled in the regard of Helon's eye, As he beheld the stranger. He was not In costly raiment clad, nor on his brow The symbol of a princely lineage wore ; No followers at his back, nor in his hand Buckler, or sword, or spear; yet in his mien. Command sat throned serene ; and, if he smiled, A kingly condescension graced his lips, The lion would have crouched to, in his lair. Observe that no is the equivalent of the line preceding. 220 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. While the trees are leafless, While the fields are bare, Buttercups and daisies Spring up here and there. Ere the snow-drop peepeth, Ere the crocus bold, Ere the early primrose Opes its paly gold, Somewhere on a sunny bank, Buttercups are bright : Somewhere 'mong the frozen grass Peeps the daisy white : Little hardy flowers, Like to children poor Playing in their sturdy health By their mother's door : Purple with the north wind, Yet alert and bold : Fearing not and caring not, Though they be a-cold. The Nautilus ever loves to glide Upon the crest of the radiant tide. Tree nor shrub Dares that drear atmosphere ; no polar pine LTprears a veteran front ; yet there ye stand, Leaning your cheeks against the thick-ribbed ice, And looking up with brilliant eyes to Him Who bids you bloom unblanched amid the waste Of Desolation. Man, who, panting, toils O'er slippery steeps, or, trembling, treads the verge Of yawning gulfs, o'er which the headlong plunge Is to eternity, looks shuddering up, And marks ye in your placid loveliness, Fearless, yet frail, and, clasping his chill hands, Blesses your pencilled beauty. 'Mid the pomp Of mountain summits rushing on the sky, And chaining the rapt soul in breathless awe He bows to bind you drooping to his breast, Inhales your spirit from the frost-winged gale, And freer dreams of heaven. THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 221 CLASS II. COMPOUND INTERROGATIVE SENTENCES. Having under the preceding head of compound declarative sentences, adduced very nu- merous examples of close, compact and loose, 1 presume that, by this time, the student is suf- ficiently acquainted with their peculiarities, to recognise them, whether they appear as de- ckd-atives, interrogatives or exclamations. I shall not, therefore, quote a greater number of examples than may be necessary to enable the student to obtain a clear conception of the rule of then delivery, and to apply it with facility. I. DEFINITE INTERROGATIVES. 1 . Close. Rule X. The close definite interrogative is delivered either with the upward slide from the beginning to the end, (see Plate, Fig. 3,) or with the upward slide at the beginning, passing into a level tone of voice in the middle, and terminating with the upward slide at the end : (see Plate, Fig. 15 :) when it has a series, i. e. two more members of similar construction ; or "being still more complex, when either of these members contains a series ; the) 7 are succes- sively delivered in the same manner as the first, but in a slightly more elevated tone of voice. (See Plate, Fig. 12 : see also Ch. III. Modulation, Slides.) Of the two methods of delivery stated in the first half of the rule, the first should he adopted in every case in which it is practicable ; and it is practicable more frequently than is generally supposed : when, however, the sentence is a very long one, and consequently the space to be traversed by the slide is too great for the compass of the voice, the second must be, necessa- rily, preferred. Examples. Is not this he that sat and begged ? Do the rulers know indeed, that this is the very Christ ? Is not this Jesus, the son of Joseph, whose father and mother we know ? Could not this man, who opened the eyes of the blind, have caused that even this man should not have died ? Have they not in this place every motive, assistance and encour- agement to engage them in a virtuous and moral life, and to ani- mate them in the attainment of useful learning ? Is it not remarkable that the same temper of weather, which raises this general warmth in animals, should cover the trees with leaves, and the fields with grass, for their security and conceal- ment, and produce such infinite swarms of insects for the support and sustenance of their respective broods ? Does atheism or universal skepticism dilate the heart with the liberal and generous sentiments, and that love of human kind which would render a man revered and blessed, as the patron of depressed merit, the friend of the widow and the orphan, the refuge and sup- port of the poor and unhappy ? 19* 222 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. Is it possible in the present state of the public sentiment of the world, with the present rapid diffusion of knowledge, with the present reduction of antiquated error to the test of reason, that such a quarter of the world will be permitted to derive nothing but barbarism from intercourse with the countries which stand at the head of civilization ? Are the miseries of man, and is the fatal necessity of death in contemplation ? Has he not himself, have not all the martyrs after him poured forth their blood in the conflict ? Hast thou not known, hast thou not heard that the everlasting God, the Lord, the Creator of the ends of the earth fainteth not, neither is weary ? Does not the farmer cultivating his lands, does not the mariner navigating his vessel on the ocean, do not professional men in their various pursuits, contribute as really as the statesman in his cabi- net to the prosperity of the country ? Are all the feelings of ancestry, posterity and fellow-citizenship ; all the charm, veneration and love bound up in the name of coun- try ; the delight, the enthusiasm, with which we seek out, after the lapse of generations and ages, the traces of our fathers' bravery and wisdom ; — are these all a legal fiction ? Is the gift of articulate speech, which enables man to impart his condition to man, the organized sense w^hich enables him to com- prehend what is imparted, is that sympathy which subjects our opinions and feelings, and through them our conduct to the influ- ence of others, and their conduct to our influence, is that chain of cause and effect which makes our characters receive impressions from the generations before us, and puts it in our power by a good or bad precedent to distil a poison or a balm into the characters of posterity, — are these, indeed, all by-laws of a corporation ? Will you believe that the pure system of Christian faith, which appeared eighteen hundred years ago, in one of the obscurest regions of the Roman empire, at the moment of the highest cul- tivation and of the lowest moral degeneracy ; w r hich superseded at once all the curious fabrics of pagan philosophy ; which spread almost instantaneously through the civilized world in opposition to the prejudices, the pride, and the persecution of the times ; which has already had the most beneficial influenceyon society, and been the source of almost all the melioration of the human character ; and which is now the chief support of the harmony, the domestic happiness, the morals, and the intellectual improvements of the best part of the world ; will you believe, I say, that this system originated in the unaided reflections of twelve Jewish fishermen or, the sea of Galilee, with the son of a carpenter at their head ? THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 223 Does prodigal autumn to our age deny The plenty that once swelled beneath his sober eye ? Will he quench the ray Infused by his own forming smile at first, And leave a work so far all blighted and accurst 9 Will a man play tricks, will he indulge A silly, fond conceit of his fair form And just proportion, fashionable mien, And pretty face, in presence of his God ? Can we w r ant obedience then To him, or possibly his love desert, Who formed us from the dust and placed us here, Full to the utmost measure of what bliss Human desires can seek or apprehend ? Canst thou with impious obloquy condemn The just decree of God, pronounced and sworn, That to his only Son, by right endued With regal sceptre, every soul in heaven Shall bend the knee, and in that honor due Confess him rio'htful king ? Will then the merciful One, who stamped our race With his own image, and who gave them sway O'er earth, and the glad dwellers on her face, Now that our flourishing nations far away Are spread, where'er the moist earth drinks the day, Forget the ancient care that taught and nursed His latest offspring ? 2. Compact. Single compacts only are employed as interrogatives : at least, I have not met with any double compact interrogatives in the course of my reading. I have found them interwoven with other interrogative sentences, but in this form, they are referred to the head of u Mixed sen- tences." The single compact sentence in most of its varieties, f their intentions ; in the name and by the authority of the people, THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 273 the only fountain of legitimate power, they shook off forever their allegiance to the British crown, and pronounced the united colonies an independent Nation ! Flung into life in the midst of a revolution that quickened every energy of a people who acknowledge no superior, he commenced his course, a stranger by birth, and a scholar by charity ! When thy surges no longer shall roll', And that firmament's length is drawn back like a scroll', Then, then shall the spirit, that sighs by thee now, Be more mighty, more lasting, more chainless than thou ! Though boundless snows the withered heath deform', And the dim sun scarce wanders through the storm' ; Yet sh?ll the smile of social love repay, With mental light, the melancholy day ! Though glory spread thy name from pole to pole, Though thou art merciful and brave and just ; Philip, reflect, thou art posting to the goal, Where mortals mix in undistinguished dust ! O would the scandal vanish with my life, Then happy were to me ensuing death ! O impotent estate of human life, Where hope and fear maintain eternal strife : Where fleeting joy does lasting doubt inspire, And most we question what we most admire ! Oh ! if servility with supple knees, Whose trade it is to smile, to crouch, to please ; If smooth dissimulation, skilled to grace A devil's purpose with an angel's face ; If smiling peeresses, and simpering peers, Encompassing his throne a few short years ; If the gilt carriage and the pampered steed, That wants no driving, and disdains the lead ; If guards, mechanically formed in ranks, Playing, at beat of drum, their martial pranks, Should'ring and standing as if struck to stone, While condescending majesty looks on ; If monarchy consist in such base things, Sighing, I say again, I pity kings ! O, had the gods done so, I had not now Worthily termed them merciless to us ! 274 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. Fragmentary Single Compact Sentences. Examples. Bootless speedy When cowardice pursues and valor flies ! Might I be As speechless, deaf and dead as he 7 ! Gods 7 ! if he do not die But for one moment, one, till I eclipse Conception with the scorn of those calm lips 7 ! [ Cat. Yet who has stirred ? Aurelius, you paint the air With passion's pencil.] Aur. Were my will a sword 7 ! \Cass. Will you dine with me to-morrow?] Casca. Ay, if I be alive, and your min ' hold, and your dinner be worth the eating' ! Would it might please your grace On our entreaties to amend your fault 7 ! Were I a thunderbolt 7 ! 2. Double Compact. Examples. I know not what course others may take 7 , but, as for me, give me liberty or give me death ! They are not fighting 7 ; do not disturb them 7 ; they are merely pausing ! This man is not expiring with agony'; that man is not dead 7 ; he is only pausing ! They are not angry with one another'; they have now no cause for quarrel'; but their country thinks there should be a pause !* He is not content to triumph over the Gauls, the Egyptians and Phamaces'; he must triumph over his own countrymen ! He is not content to cause the statue of Scipio and Petrius to be carried before him'; he must be graced by that of Cato : he is not content with the simple effigy of Cato'; he must exhibit that of his suicide ! He is not satisfied to insult the Romans with triumphing over the death of liberty'; they must gaze upon the representation of her expiring agonies, and mark the writhings of her last fatal struggle ! * This paragraph is, correctly speaking, a compound declarative perfect loose with douhle compact porta. But the capital letters show that the parts are here treated as independent THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 275 They did not know that the angel of the Lord would go forth with them, and smite the invaders of their sanctuary ; they did not know that generation after generation, would, on this day, rise up and call them blessed ; that their names would be handed down, from father to son, the penman's theme, and the poet's inspiration ; challenging, through countless years, the jubilant praises of an emancipated people, and the plaudits of an admiring world ; no ; they knew only, that the arm, which should protect, was oppress • ing them, and they shook it off: that the chalice presented to their lips was a poisonous one, and they dashed it away ! The wonder is not that two men have died on the same day, but that two such men, after having performed so many, and such splendid services in the cause of liberty, after the multitude of other coincidences which seem to have linked their destinies to- gether, after having lived so long together, the objects of their country's joint veneration, after having been spared to witness the great triumph of their toils at home, and looked together from Pis- gah's top on the sublime effect of that grand impulse which they had given to the same glorious cause throughout the world, should on this fiftieth anniversary of the day on which they had ushered that cause into the light, be both caught up to heaven, together, in the midst of their raptures 1 Nay, sneak not off thus cowardly ; poor souls Ye are as destitute of information As is the lifeless subject of my thoughts ! I have no mother, for she died, When I was very young ; But her memory still around my heart, Like morning mists, has hung ! Oh mother, mother ! do not jest On such a theme as this ! Though I was but a little child, Bitterly I cried, And clung to thee in agony, When my poor father died ! But triumph not, ye peace-enamored few'; Fire, nature, genius, never dwelt with you'; For you no fancy consecrates the scene, Where rapture uttered vows, and wept between'; "Tis yours, unmoved to sever and to meet : No pledge is sacred, and nc home is sweet ! 276 THE BEND. SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 3. Loose Sentences. 1. Perfect Loose. If any', speak x ; for him have I offended ! Time flies x : words are unavailing x : the chieftains declare for in- stant battle ! Too late have I come to the knowledge of thee v : too late have I begun to love thee ! Men have been frightened into intellectual dwarfs N ; and the beasts of the field and the forests have not attained more than half their ordinary growth ! It seems, gentlemen, this is an age of reason N : the time and the person are at last arrived, that are to dissipate the errors that have overspread the past generations of ignorance ! Not one shall survive to be enslaved ; for ere the tri-colored flag shall wave over our prostrate republic, the bones of four mil- lions of Americans shall whiten the shores of their country ! And may the disciples of Washington then see, as we now see, the flag of the Union floating on the top of the Capitol ; and then, as now, may the sun in his course visit no land more free, more happy, more lovely, than this our own country ! In caves and forests will I hide myself ; with tigers and with savage beasts will I commune ; and when, at length, we meet again before the blessed tribunal of that Deity whose mild doc- trines, and whose mercies, ye have this day renounced, then shall ye feel the agony and grief of soul, which now tear the bosom of your weak accuser ! The substantial clothing of our industrious classes, is now the growth of the American soil, and the texture of the American loom ; the music of the water-wheel is heard on the banks of our thousand rural streams ; and enterprise and skill, with wealth, re- finement and prosperity in their train, have studded the seashore with populous cities, are making their great progress of improve- ment through the interior, and sowing towns and villages, as it were, broadcast through the country ! May the fires of their genius and courage animate and sustain us in our contest, and bring it to a like glorious result : may it be carried on with singleness to the objects, that alone summoned us to it as a great and imperious duty, irksome, yet necessary : may there be a willing, a joyful immolation of all selfish passions on the altar of a common country : may the hearts of our com- batants be bold, and, under a propitious heaven, their swords flash victory : may a speedy peace bless us, and the passions of war go off ; leaving in their place a stronger love of country and of each other ! THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 277 The pilgrim who reaches this valley of tears, Would fain hurry by N ; and, with trembling and fears, He is launched on the wreck- covered river ! Strike till the last armed foe expires x : Strike for your altars and your fires v : Strike for the green graves of vour sires v ; God and your native land ! All search was vain, and years had passed^ : that child was ne'er forgot, When once a daring hunter climbed unto a lofty spot x : From thence, upon a rugged crag the chamois never reached, He saw an infant's fleshless bones the elements had bleached ! There then she had found a grave : Within that chest had she concealed herself, Fluttering with joy, the happiest of the happy, When a spring lock that lay in ambush there, Fastened her down forever ! Last noon beheld them full of lusty life : Last eve, in beauty's circle proudly gay : The midnight brought the signal- sound of strife : The morn, the marshalling in arms : the day, Battle's magnificently stern array ! From pavement rough, or frozen ground, The engine's rattling wheels resound ; And soon before his eyes, The lurid flames, with horrid glare, Mingled with murky vapors, rise In wreathy folds upon the air, And veil the frowning skies ! 2. Imperfect Loose. Examples. To sum up all in one word, it is our country v : our dear native land! This, be it remembered, has been the fruit of intellectual exer- tion : the triumph of mind ! It is the best classic the world has ever seen v : the noblest that has ever honored and dignified the language of mortals ! He aspired to be the highest^ : above the people^ : above the authorities x : above the laws v : above his country ! 24 278 THE BEND. SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. It was the spirit of liberty which still abides on the earth, and has its home in the bosom of the brave N : which but yesterday in beautiful France, restored the violated charter^ : which even now burns brightly on the towers of Belgium, and has rescued Poland from the tyrant's grasp x : making their sons, aye, and their daugh- ters too, the wonder and the admiration of the worlds ; the pride and glory of the human race ! It is this, which consecrating the humble circle of the hearth, will at times extend itself to the circumference of the horizon : which nerves the arm of the patriot to save his country : which lights the lamp of the philosopher to amend man : which will yet invigorate the martyr to merit immortality : which, when the world's agony is passed, and the glory of another is dawning, will prompt the prophet, even in his chariot of fire, and in his vision of heaven, to bequeath to mankind the mantle of his memory ! Adieu the silent look : the streaming eye : The murmured plaint : the deep heart-rending sigh ; In that lone land of deep despair, No Sabbath's heavenly light shall rise ; No God regard your bitter prayer ; Nor Saviour call you to the skies ! And in the waveless mirror of his mind, He views fleet years of pleasure left behind, Since Anna's empire o'er his heart began : Since first he called her his before the holy man ! II. INTERROGATIVE EXCLAMATORY SENTENCES. 1. DEFINITE INTERROGATIVE. 1. Close Definite. Examples. [What!] did he apprehend dangerous consequences from the deliberations of the grave elders of the kirk ! Was it a wonder then that I seized my prejudices, and with a blush burned them on the altar of my country ! Would you really burn the gospel and erase the statutes for the dreadful equivalent of the crucifix and the guillotine ! Shall it be said, that we will not sacrifice one prejudice on the altar of the Union for its preservation, when they offered up thou- sands to rear it ! THE BEND. SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 279 Is there nothing that whispers to that right honorable gentleman, that the crisis is too big, that the times are too gigantic to be ruled by the little hackneyed and every-day means of ordinary corruption ! [How !] Will you suffer your glory to be thus sullied in the face of the whole world, and have it said, that a nation, who first dedicated a temple in their city to Clemency, had not found any in yours ! Shall an inferior magistrate, a governor who holds his power of the Roman people, in a Roman province, within sight of Italy, bind, scourge, torture with fire and red-hot plates of iron, and at last put to the infamous death of the cross, a Roman citizen ! [What !] Is the legislature, is the rule and government in this country reduced to this state, that it shall find no protection in the administration of the law of the country against persons associating and affiliating for the purpose which they declare here ! [Gracious God !] Shall the horrors which surround the informer, the ferocity of his countenance and the terrors of his voice, cast such a wide and appalling influence that none dare approach and save the victim which he marks for ignominy and death ! Is it possible that any man can seriously believe the paralyzing five millions of such a people as I have been describing, can be a benefit to the empire ! Is there any man who deserves the name, not of a statesman, but a rational being, who can think it politic to rob such a multitude of all the energies of an honorable ambition ! Shall neither the cries of innocence expiring in agony, nor the tears of pitying spectators, nor the majesty of the Roman com- monwealth, nor the fear of the justice of his country, restrain the licentious and wanton cruelty of a monster, who, in confidence of his riches, strikes at the root of liberty, and sets mankind at defiance ! Dost thou not see my baby at my breast, That sucks the nurse asleep ! Is it heaven's will To try the dust it kindles for a day With infinite agony ! See ye not yonder how the locusts swarm, To drink the fountains of your honor up And leave your hills a desert ! Fragmentary Definite Close. Examples. [What!] The gentleman from Massachusetts, who assisted by his vote to raise the army to twenty-five thousand, alarmed at the danger of our liberties from this very army ! 280 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. [What!] The opposition who in 1798 and 1799, could raise a useless army to fight an enemy three thousand miles distant from us, alarmed at the existence of one raised for the attack of the adjoining provinces of the enemy ! [What !] To resign again That freedom for whose sake our souls have now Engraved themselves in blood ! -&- 2. Compact Definite. The examples under this head, are single compact only. I have not been able to find a double compact. I am inclined to believe that the structure of the double compact in its pure state is incompatible with interrogative use.* Examples. [Gracious God !] Is a tyranny of this kind to be borne with, where law is said to exist ! Would it not be advisable rather to attend to this declared object of the war now, than wait until after the Canadian scheme is effected ! [W'hat !] Might Rome then have been taken, if these men who were at our gates had not wanted courage for the attempt ! Rome taken, whilst I was consul ! [What ! my lords,] Not cultivate barren land, not encourage the manufactories of your country, not relieve the poor of your flock, if the church is to be at any expense thereby ! Will you sink from manhood, and its nobleness and high estima- tion, will you tarnish the lustre of a character already established, will you hazard your fortune, will you close up the avenues of the future, which now invites you smilingly to enter, and reap and enjoy, when at best you can gain nothing but revenge, and may miss even that ! 3. LOOSE DEFINITE. 1. Perfect Loose. Examples. Was it not enough that sorrow robed the happy home in mourn- ing : was it not enough that disappointment preyed on its loveliest * Since writing the text I have met with two, which I here subjoin. The first will be found again under the head of perfect loose, and the second under the miscellaneous head. M Am I to find them, not in the pursuit of useful science, not in the encouragement of arta and agriculture, not in the relief of an impoverished tenantry, not in the proud march of an unsuccessful, but not less sacred patriotism, not in the bright page of warlike hnmortality, dashing its iron crown from guilty greatness, or feeding freedom's laurel with the blood of the despot ; but am I to find them amid drunken panders and corrupted slaves, debauching tha innocence of village-life, and even amid the stews of the tavern, collecting or creating the ma- terials of the brothel !" w What! Must I not only reveal this guilt, must I 'not only expose this perfidy, must I not only brand the infidelity of a wife and a mother ; but must I, amidst the agonies of outraged nature, mako the brother proof of the sister's prostitution !" THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 281 prospects : was it not enough that its little inmates cried in vain for bread, and heard no answer but the poor father's sigh, and drank no sustenance, but the wretched mother's tears : was this a time for passion, conscienceless, licentious passion, with its eye of lust, its heart of stone, its hand of rapine, to rush into the mourn- ful sanctuary of misfortune, casting crime into the cup of wo, and rob the parents of their wealth, their child, and rob the child of her only charm, her innocence ! [Oh !] Does not the God, who is said to be love, shed over this attribute of his, its finest illustration, when, while he sits in the highest heaven, and pours out his fulness on the whole subor- dinate domain of nature, and of providence, he bows a pitying regard on the very humblest of his children, and sends his re- viving spirit into every heart, and cheers by his presence every home, and provides for the wants of every family, and watches over every sick-bed, and listens to the complaint of every sufferer ; and while, by his wondrous mind, the weight of universal govern- ment is borne, oh ! is it not more wondrous and more excellent still, that he feels for every sorrow, and has an ear open to every prayer ! [What !] I exclaimed, as no doubt you are all ready to exclaim, Can this be possible ! is it thus that I am to find the educated youth of Ireland occupied ! is this the employment of the miser- able aristocracy that yet lingers in this devoted country : am I to find them, not in the pursuits of useful science, not in the encour- agement of arts and agriculture, not in the relief of an impover- ished tenantry, not in the proud march of an unsuccessful but not less sacred patriotism, not in the bright page of warlike immor- tality, dashing its iron crown from guilty greatness, or feeding freedom's laurel with the blood of the despot ; but am I to find them, amid drunken panders, and corrupted slaves, debauching the innocence of village-life, and even amid the stews of the tavern, collecting or creating the materials of the brothel ! [What !] Were you snarling all before I came, Ready to catch each other by the throat ; And turn you all your hatred now on me ! 2. Imperfect Loose. Examples. [What !] To attribute the sacred sanctions of God and nature to the massacre of the Indian's scalping-knife : to the cannibal savage, torturing, murdering, roasting and eating, literally, my lords, eating the mangled victims of his barbarous battles ! [Shall I call you soldiers ?] Soldiers ! who have dared to besiege 24* 282 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. the son of your emperor : who have made him a prisoner in his own intrenchments ! [Can I call you citizens ?] Citizens ! who have trampled under your feet the authority of the senate : who have violated the most awful sanctions ; even those which hostile states have ever held in respect, the rights of ambassadors and the laws of nations ! Look upon my boy as though I guessed it : Guessed the trial thou wouldst have me make : Guessed it instinctively ! [What !] I that killed the husband, and his father, To take her in her heart's extremest hate : With curses in her mouth : tears in her eyes : The bleeding witness of her hatred by : With God, her conscience, and these bars against me ! Is there not a sound, As of some watchword, that recalls at night All that gave light and wonder to the day, In these soft words that breathe of loveliness, And summon to the spirit scenes that rose Rich on the raptured vision, as the eye Hung like a tranced thing above the page That Genius had made golden with its glow : The page of noble story ; of high towers And castled halls, envistaed like the line Of heroes and great hearts, that centuries Had led before their hearths in dim array : Of lake and lawn, and gray and cloudy tree, That rocked with bannered foliage to the storm Above the walls it shadowed, and whose leaves, Rustling in gathered music to the winds, Seemed voiced as with the sound of many seas ! 2. INDEFINITE INTERROGATIVE. 1. Close Indefinite. Examples. Where is the man, where is the philosopher, who could so live, suffer and die, without weakness and without ostentation ! What numberless errors and frauds have crept in among the poor deluded people, under cover of the church and the pre- tended infallibility of the Pope ! Who would not prefer this living tomb in the hearts of his countrymen, to the proudest mausoleum that the genius of sculp- ture could erect ! THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 283 What ought to be our emotions, as we meet on this anniversary on the spot where the first successful foundations of the great American republic were laid ! What a well-spring of gratitude to God, of love to man, of self-enjoyment, do such persons shut up with impious hands against themselves and all whom they influence ! How often do we see, in our public gazettes, a pompous display of honors to the memory of some veteran patriot, who has been suffered to linger out his latter days in unregarded penury ! How mistaken were all the amatory poets, from Anacreon down- ward, who preferred the bloom of the rose and the thrill of the nightingale to the saffron hide and dulcet treble of sixty-three ! How next to impossible does it seem for them to regulate their thoughts, words and deeds, and all the influences they are per- petually exerting over others, by the purifying love and self-sacri- ficing humility of the gospel ! Who would not exchange the misgivings and the gloom, that overhang this skeptical creed, for the inflexible faith, the ardent hope, the holy rejoicing ot him who doubts not for a moment the future reign of universal peace ! Who could have suspected that, under the very roof of virtue, in the presence of a venerable and respected matron, and of that innocent family, whom she had reared up in the sunshine of her example, the most abandoned could have plotted his iniquities ! What a cheering pledge does it give of the stability of our insti- tutions, that while abroad, the benighted multitude are prostrating themselves before the idols which their own hands have fashioned into kings, here, in this land of the free, our people are everywhere starting up, with one impulse, to follow with their acclamations the ascending spirits of the great fathers of the Republic ! How like a mountain devil in the heart Rules the unreined ambition ! What numbers here through odd ambition strive To seem the most transported things alive ! what passions then, What melting sentiments of kindly care On the new parents seize ! Ah ! what avails the lengthening mead By nature's kindest bounty spread Along the vale of flowers ! How shall I then attempt to sing of Him, Who, light himself, in uncreated light Invested deep, dwells awfully retired From mortal eye, or angel's purer ken ! 284 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 2. Compact Indefinite* Examples. How different would have been our lot this day, both as men and citizens, had the Revolution failed of success ! [O !] how many favorite schemes of enjoyment would the thought of Him and his will put to flight, if faithfully admitted to the inner chambers of the mind ! How wretched is the situation of thy creatures, when they desert Thee, the fountain of life, violate the laws of thy government, and wilfully pursue their own destruction ! What, what are the hours of a splendid wretch like this, com- pared with those that shed their poppies and their roses upon the pillows of our peaceful and virtuous patriots ! What a dead thing is a clock, with its ponderous embowelments of lead and brass, its pert or solemn dumbness of communication, compared with the simple altar-like structure, and silent heart- language of the old dial ! How misapprehended have been the claims of youth, if years and wrinkles can thus despoil their conquest, and depopulate the navy of its prowess, and beguile the bar of its eloquence ! What were the selfish and petty strides of an Alexander, to con- quer a little section of a savage world, compared with this generous, this magnificent advance towards the emancipation of the entire world ! What pride did you not feel in that soil, when you lately wel- comed the nation's guest, the venerable champion of America, to the spot where the first note of struggling freedom was uttered, which sounded across the Atlantic, and drew him from all the de- lights of life to enlist in our cause ! How well would it have been, had he but retraced the fountain of that document : had he recalled to mind the virtues it rewarded ; the pure train of honors it associated ; the line of spotless ancestry it distinguished ; the high ambition its bequests inspired ; the moral imitation it imperatively commanded ! How could it be otherwise, when, for ages upon ages, invention has fatigued itself with expedients for imitation ; when, as I have read with horror, in the progress of my legal studies, the homicide of a mere Irishman was considered justifiable ; and when, though his ignorance was the origin of all his crimes, his education was pro- hibited by act of parliament ! [Oh !] how happy had it been when he arrived at the bank of the river with the ill-fated fugitive, ere yet he had committed her to * The single only ; s given, for the reason assigned under definite compact. THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 285 that boat of which, like the fabled bark of Styx, the exile was eternal, how happy at that moment, so teeming with misery and with shame, if you, my lord, had met him, and could have accosted .him in the character of that good genius which had abandoned him ! What an accession of glory and magnificence does Dr. Herschel superadd to it, when, instead of supposing all those suns fixed, and the motion confined to their respective planets, he loosens those multitudinous suns themselves from their stations, sets them all into motion with their splendid retinue of planets and satellites, and imagines them, thus attended, to perform a stupendous revolution, system above system, around some grander, unknown centre, some- where in the boundless abyss of space ! and when, carrying on the process, you suppose even that centre itself not stationary, but also counterpoised by other masses in the immensity of space, with which, attended by their accumulated trains of Planets, suns, and adamantine spheres Wheeling unshaken through the void immense, it maintains harmonious concert, surrounding, in its vast career, some other centre still more remote and stupendous, which in its turn — ! Why do you repeat My words, as if you feared to trust your own ! How would those rescued thousands bless thy name, Shouldst thou betray us ! How quickly nature falls into revolt, When gold becomes her object ! [Oh] how comely it is, and how reviving To the spirits of just men, long oppressed, When God into the hands of their deliverer Puts invincible might To quell the mighty of the earth ! [But oh !] how altered was its sprightlier tone, When Cheerfulness, a nymph of healthiest hue, Her bow across her shoulder flung, Her buskins gemmed with morning dew, Blew an inspiring air, that dell and thicket rung ! 3. Loose Indefinite. 1. Perfect Loose. Examples. What noble institutions : what a comprehensive policy : what wise equalization of eveiy political advantage ! 280 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. What prepossession, what blindness, must it be to compare the son of Sophronius with the son of Mary ! what an immeasurable distance between them ! How insensible have Christians and the Christian ministry been to the inestimable value of the peace principle : how little have they realized its truth, power, beauty ! Who can deny that the existence of such a country presents a subject for human congratulation : who can deny that its gigantic advancement offers a field for the most rational conjecture ! What sweetness, what purity, in his manners ! what an affecting gracefulness in his instructions ! what sublimity in his maxims ! what profound wisdom in his discourses ! what presence of mind, what sagacity and propriety in his answers ! how great the com- mand over his passions ! Who shall say for what purpose a mysterious Providence may not have designed her : who shall say that when in its follies and its crimes, the old world may have interred all the pride of its power, and all the pomp of its civilization, human nature may not find its destined renovation in the new ! Why is it that to man have been given passions which he cannot tame, and which sink him below the brute : and why is it that a few ambitious men are permitted by the great Ruler, in the selfish pursuit of their own aggrandizement, to scatter in ruin, desolation and death, whole kingdoms ! How many darling habits would be abandoned, if the whole man were brought under the dominion of this imperious visiter ; and how many affections would be torn away from the objects on which they are now fastened, if God were at all times attended to and regarded with that affection which he at all times demands of us ! How hard is it to convince Christians of these things ! how hard is it to bring them to act on the broad, simple, uncompromising precepts of the gospel ! how next to impossible does it seem for them to regulate their thoughts, words and deeds, and all the influences they are perpetually exerting over others, by the purify- ing and self-sacrificing humility of the gospel ! What, though in our history, I read of no patriarchs and prophets and divine legislators; of no pillar of cloud by day and of fire by night ; not of the terrors of Sinai, or the vision of Pisgah ; not of the chariot of fire and the mantle of power ; nor yet of the fiery tempest of Sodom or the severed waves of Jordan ! what, though in the records of his dealings with us, I read not that he stood and measured the earth ; that he beheld and drove asunder the nations; that the mountains saw him and trembled ; that the deep lifted up his hands on high ; that the sun and moon stood still in their habi- tations ! what, though in the history of the founders of our institu- THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 287 tions, I read not of cloven tongues like as of fire ; nor of the earth- quake at midnight that burst the prison-gates ; nor of the trance of Peter, nor the vision of Cornelius, nor the mid-day glory that struck Paul with blindness !* How beautiful is all this visible world : How beautiful in its action and itself ! How still he is now ! how fiery hot ! how cold ! How terrible ! how lifeless ! How fair its lawns and sheltering woods appear : How sweet its streamlet murmurs in mine ear ! How ghastly the visage of death doth appear ; How frightful the thought of the shroud and the bier ; And the blood-crested worm how vile ! How friendly the hand that faith is now lending : How benignant her look o'er the pillow while bending : How sweet, how assuring, her smile ! What affections the violet awakes ! What loved little islands, twice seen in their lakes, Can the wild water-lily restore ! What landscapes I read in the primrose's looks ! And what pictures of pebbled and minnowy brooks, In the vetches that tangled then* shore ! 2. Imperfect Loose. Examples. Where, in the compass of human literature, can the fancy be so elevated by sublime description : can the heart be so warmed by simple, unaffected tenderness ! What a pity that the object of that guilty confidence had not something of humanity : that as a female, she did not feel for the character of her sex : that as a mother she did not mourn over the sorrows of a helpless family ! How peculiarly and imperiously incumbent, then, is it on us this day, in this place, and in this assembly, to speak together concern- ing the glory of our ancestors ; to analyze that glory ; and to in- quire what it is to deserve, and what it is to disgrace those an- cestors ! * Each of the three parts of this long perfect loose indefinite, it may be well to say, is a compact sentence having only the first word (what) of the first part ^expressed ; (see Compound Compact Indefinite Interrogative Sentences, JVote ;) and having an imperfect loose construction in the Bacond part. The correlative words, I need scarcely add, are yet—thougk. 288 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. But how much nobler will be our sovereign's boast in having it to say that he found law dear, and left it cheap : found it a sealed book, and left it a living letter : found it a patrimony of the rich ; left it the inheritance of the poor : found it the two-edged sword of craft and oppression ; left it the staff of honesty, and the shield of innocence ! What a proud testimony does it bear to the character of our nation, that it is able to make a proper estimate of services like these : that while in other countries, the senseless mob fall down in stupid admiration, before the bloody wheels of the conqueror, even the conqueror by accident, in this, our people rise, with one accord, to pay their homage to intellect and virtue ! Oh ! how recreating is it to feel that occasions may rise in which the soul of man may resume her pretensions : in which she hears the voice of nature whispering to her, " I have made man erect that he may look up to heaven :" in which even I can look up with calm security to the court, and down with the most profound con- tempt on the reptile I mean to tread upon ! 3. INDIRECT INTERROGATIVE. Examples. Surely, they were indignant at this treatment : surely, the air rings with reproaches upon a man who has thus made them stake their reputation upon a falsehood, and then gives them little less than the lie direct to their assertions ! [No, sir ; nothing of all this is heard from our cabinet.] Surely, a people with whom we were connected by so many natural and adventitious ties, had some claim upon our humanity : surely, if our duty required that they and theirs should be sacri- ficed to our interests, or our passions, some regret mingled in the execution of the purpose ! We postponed the decree of ruin until the last moment : we hesitated, we delayed, until longer delay was dangerous ! [Alas ! sir, there was nothing of this kind.] I see no swords and bucklers on these floors ! Sure they lie, Who say thou cam'st a secret spy ! [Heaven ! are thy thunders idle ? and thou earth, That yet endurest his tread,] thou wilt not part Beneath him, and deep hide his infamy ! [Oh !] the count Is pleasant then ; and thou wouldst fain forget A humble villager, who only boasts The treasure of the heart ! THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 289 III. COMPELLATIVE EXCLAMATORY SENTENCES. 1. Examples at the beginning. Friends, Romans, countrymen ! lend me your ears. Men ! brethren ! and fathers 7 ! hear ye my defence which I now make unto you ! Friends, countrymen, and lovers'' ! hear me for my cause, and be silent that you may hear. Truth 7 ! friendship''! my country 7 ! sacred objects 7 , sentiments dear to my heart 7 , accept my last sacrifice. Oh thou disconsolate widow' ! robbed, so cruelly robbed, and in so short a time, both of a husband and a son 7 ! what must be the plenitude of thy sufferings ! Friends ! fellow- citizens ! and countrymen ! who have honored me with your presence and attention on this occasion, I thank you : I thank you from my heart. Ye, who have hearts of pity ! ye, who have experienced the anguish of dissolving friendship ! who have wept and still weep over the mouldering ruins of departed kindred ! — ye can enter into the reflection. Jerusalem, Jerusalem, thou that killest the prophets and stonest them that are sent unto thee, how often would I have gathered thy children together, even as a hen gathereth her chickens under her wings, and ye would not ! Oh Luxury 7 ! thou curst by Heaven's decree, How ill exchanged are things like these for thee ! My mother earth ! And thou, fresh breaking day ! and you, ye mountains ! Why are ye beautiful ? Fair star of evening ! splendor of the west ! Star of my country ! on the horizon's brink Thou hangest. Most potent, grave and reverend seigniors ! My very noble and approved good masters ! That I have ta'en away this old man's daughter, Is most true. O day the fairest sure that ever rose ! Period and end of anxious Emma's woes ! Sire of her joy, and source of her delight ! O, winged with pleasure, take thy happy flight, And give each future morn a tincture of thy white, 2S 290 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. Ye well arrayed ! ye lilies of our land ! Ye lilies male ! who neither toil nor spin, (As sister lilies might,) if not so wise As Solomon, more sumptuous to the sight ! Ye delicate ! whom nothing can support, Yourselves most insupportable ! for whom The winter rose must blow, the sun put on A brighter beam in Leo, silky- soft Favonius breathe still softer, or be chid, And other worlds send odors, sauce and song, And robes, and notions, framed in foreign looms ! O ye Lorenzos of our age ! who deem One moment unamused a misery "Not made for feeble man, who call aloud For every bauble drivelled o'er by sense, For rattles and conceits of every cast, For change of follies and relays of joy, To drag your patient through the tedious length Of a short winter's day ! — say, sages ! say, Wit's oracles ! say, dreamers of gay dreams ! How will you weather an eternal night, Where such expedients fail S 2. Examples in the middle. And he said, Men ! brethren ! and fathers' ! hearken. But Peter standing up with the eleven, lifted up his voice and said unto them, Ye men of Judea' ! and all ye that dwell in Jerusa- lem' ! be this known unto you, I love thee, mournful, sober-suited night ! When the faint moon, yet lingering in her wane, And veiled in clouds, with pale uncertain light Hangs o'er the waters of the restless main. 3. Examples at the end. By the end i3 here meant, it will be borne in mind, the end of perfect sense : marked Indifferently by partial or perfect close : the end also of interrogatives and interrogative excla- mations, and of their parts, if loose. Now that you are gone, who will take your place, servant of God, and friend of man ? Is this your triumph, this your proud applause, Children of truth, and champions of her cause ? THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 291 Behold, you powers ! To whom you have intrusted human kind ! See Europe, Afric, Asia, put in balance, And all weighed down by one light, worthless woman ! And say, Supernal powers ! who deeply scan Heaven's dark decrees, unfathomed yet by man ! When shall the world call down to cleanse her shame That embryo spirit, yet without a name : That friend of nature, whose avenging hands Shall burst the Lybian's adamantine bands ? How could ye do this, ye slaves and miserable panders of tyranny ? On, ye brave, Who rush to glory and the grave ! Then melt, ye elements ! that formed in vain This troubled pulse and visionary brain ! Fade, ye wild flowers ! memorials of my doom ! And sink, ye stars ! that light me to the tomb ! In all the preceding examples of compellatives at the end, except the last three, they ter- minate with their appropriate ending, the bend : in the last three, they yield to the over- powering force of the downward slide and the imperative mood. IV. SEMI-EXCLAMATORY. Examples. So thought Palmyra x : where is she ! They will cry in the last accents of despair', oh ! for a Wash- ington, an Adams, a Jefferson !* Gentlemen, we are at the point of a century from the birth of Washington ; and what a century it has been ! At the end of the very next century, if she proceeds as she seems to promise', what a wondrous spectacle may she not ex- hibit ! When Jesus saw that he was very sorrowful, he said', How hardly shall they that have riches enter into the kingdom of God ! And when he came to himself, he said', How many hired ser- vants of my father have enough and to spare, and I perish with hunger ! If ye then, being evil, know how to give good gifts unto your children', how much more shall your heavenly Father give the Holy Spirit to them that ask him ! * /. e. Oh what would we not give for a Washington. &e 292 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. Praise and thanksgiving are the most delightful business of heav- en x ; and God grant that they may be our greatest delight, our most frequent employment, on earth ! Jerusalem', Jerusalem', thou that killest the prophets and stonest them that are sent unto thee', how often would I have gathered thy children together, even as a hen gathereth her chick- ens under her wings, and ye would not !* And the king was much moved, and went up to the chamber over the gate, and wept v ; and as he went up, thus he said : O my son Absalom', my son', my son Absalom' ! would to God I had died for thee, Absalom, my son, my son ! When the sun rises or sets in the heavens, when autumn pours forth its fruits, or when winter returns in its awful forms, happy were it for us, did we view the Creator and Preserver of all, con- tinually manifesting himself in his various works ! When a government forbids its citizens, under pain of death, to receive any pension or largess from the hands of foreigners, how gentle and easy is that law to those, who, for the sake of their fatherland and liberty, would of their own accord, abstain from so unworthy an act ! but on the contrary, how harsh and oppressive does it appear to those who care for nothing but their selfish gains ! If for the prosperity of our worldly -attempts, for avoiding dan- gers that threaten us with pain and damage, for defeating the adversaries of our secular quiet, we make our song of victory, how much more for the happy progress of our spiritual affairs, for escaping those dreadful hazards of utter ruin and endless torture, for vanquishing sin and hell, those irreconcilable enemies to our everlasting peace, are we obliged to utter triumphant anthems of joy and thankfulness ! Yes, beauty dwells in all our paths, but sorrow too is there : How oft some cloud within us dims the bright, still summer air, When we carry our sick hearts abroad amidst the joyous things, That through the leafy places glance on many-colored wings ! Auspicious Hope ! in thy sweet garden grow Wreaths for eaeh toil, a charm for every wo : Won by their sweets, in nature's languid hour, The way-worn pilgrim seeks thy summer bower : There, as the wild bee murmurs on the wing, What peaceful dreams, thy handmaid spirits bring ! * This sentence is not, strictly speaking, semi-exclamatory, but wholly : yet the compellative portion being virtually declarative, I include this and other cases of the same kind, under the Bemi-exclamatory head. THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 293 What viewless forms the JSolian organs play And sweep the furrowed lines of anxious thought away ! Look then abroad through nature to the rano-e Of planets, suns and adamantine spheres, Wheeling unshaken through the void immense, And speak, man ! does this capacious scene With half that kindling majesty dilate Thy strong conception, as when Brutus rose Refulgent from the stroke of Caesar's fate Amid the crowd of patriots, and his arm Aloft extending, like eternal Jove When guilt brings down the thunder, called aloud On Tully's name, and shook his crimson steel, And bade the father of his country, hail ! For lo ! the tyrant prostrate on the dust, And Rome again is free ! Land of our fathers ! though 'tis ours to roam A land upon whose bosom thou might'st lie, Like infant on its mother's ; though 'tis ours To gaze upon a nobler heritage Than thou couldst e'er unshadow to thy sons ; Though ours to linger upon fount and sky, Wilder, and peopled with great spirits who Walk with a deeper majesty than thine ; Yet, as our fatherland, oh who shall tell The lone mysterious energy which calls Upon our sinking spirits to walk forth Amid thy wood and mount, where every hill Is eloquent with beauty, and the tale And song of centuries, the cloudless years When fairies walked thy valleys, and the turf Rung to their tiny footsteps, and quick flowers Sprang with the lifting grass on which they trode : When all the landscape murmured to its rills, And Joy with Hope slept in its leafy bowers ! Miscellaneous Examples of Exclamatory Sentences. Blush, then, ministers and warriors of imperial France, who have deluded your nation by pretensions to a disinterested regard for its liberties and lights ! disgorge the riches extorted from your fellow- citizens, and the spoils amassed from confiscation and blood ! re- store to impoverished nations the price paid by them for the privilege of slavery, and now appropriated to the refinements of luxury and corruption ! approach the tomb of Hamilton, and com- 25* 294 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. pare the insignificance of your gorgeous palaces with the awful majesty of this tenement of clay ! If charters are not deemed sacred, how miserably precarious is every thing founded upon them ! But I forbear, and come reluctantly to the transactions of that dismal night, when in such quick succession we felt the extremes of grief, astonishment and rage : when heaven in anger, for a dread- ful moment, suffered hell to take the reins : when Satan with his chosen band opened the sluices of New England's blood, and sacrile- giously polluted our land with the dead bodies of her guiltless sons! May that magnificence of spirit, which scorns the low pursuits of malice, may that generous compassion, which often preserves from ruin even a guilty villain, forever actuate the noble bosoms of Americans ! Tell me, ye bloody butchers ! ye villains high and low ! ye wretches who contrived, as well as ye who executed the inhuman deed ! do you not feel the goads and stings of conscious guilt pierce through your savage bosoms ! Unhappy Monk ! cut off, in the gay morn of manhood, from all the joys which sweeten life : doomed to drag on a pitiful existence, without even a hope to taste the pleasures of returning health ! Ye dark, designing knaves ! ye murderers ! parricides ! how dare you tread upon the earth, which has drank in the blood of slaugh- tered innocents, shed by your hands : how dare you breathe that air which wafted to the ear of heaven the groans of those who fell a sacrifice to your accursed ambition ! But if the laboring earth doth not expand her jaws, if the air you breathe is not commis- sioned to be the minister of death, yet hear it and tremble ! The eye of heaven penetrates the darkest chambers of the soul : traces the leading clue through all the labyrinths which your industrious folly has devised ; and you, however you may have screened yourselves from human eyes, must be arraigned, must lift your hands, red with the blood of those whose death you have procured, at the tremendous bar of God ! May this Almighty Being graciously preside in all our councils : may he direct us to such measures as he himself shall approve, and be pleased to bless: may we ever be a people favored of God : may our land be a land of liberty, the seat of virtue, the asylum of the oppressed, a name and a praise in the whole earth, until the last shock of time shall bury the empires of the world in one com- mon undistinguished ruin ! The voice of your father's blood cries to you from the ground, My sons, scorn to be slaves ! In vain we met the frowns of ty- rants ; in vain we crossed the boisterous ocean, found a new world, and prepared it for the happy residence of liberty ; in vain we THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 295 toiled ; in vain we fought ; we bled in vain ; if you, our offspring, want valor to repel the assaults of her invaders ! Say, fellow-citizens ! what dreadful thought now swells your heaving bosoms ! You fly to arms : sharp indignation flashes from each eye : revenge gnashes her iron teeth : death grins a hideous smile, secure to drench his greedy jaws in human gore ; whilst hovering furies darken all the air ! For what task more delightful than to contemplate the success- ful struggles of virtue: to see it, at one moment, panting under the grasp of oppression, and rising in the next with renewed strength, as if, like the giant son of earth, she had acquired vigor from the fall : to see hope and disappointment, plenty and want, defeats and vic- tories, following each other in rapid succession, and contributing, like light and shade, to the embellishment of the piece ! — What more soothing to the soft and delicate feelings of humanity, than to wander, with folded arms and slow and pensive step, amidst the graves of departed heroes, to indulge the mingled emotions of grief and admiration : at one moment giving way to private sorrow, and lamenting the loss of a friend, a relation, a brother ; in the next, glowing with patriot warmth, gazing with ardor on their wounds, and invoking their spirits, while we ask Heaven to inspire us with equal fortitude ! Strange, unaccountable paradox! How much more rational would it be to argue that the natural enemy of the privileges of freemen is he who is robbed of them himself ! How many opportunities do foreign attachments afford, to tamper with domestic factions : to practise the arts of seduction : to mis- lead public opinion : to influence or awe the public councils ! How novel, how grand the spectacle ! Commencincr his administration, what heart is not charmed with o ... the recollection of the pure and wise principles announced by him- self as the basis of his political life ! No matter how we may have graduated in the scale of nations ; no matter with what wreath we may have been adorned, or what blessings we may have been denied ; no matter what may have been our feuds, our follies or our misfortunes ; it has at least been universally conceded, that our hearths were the home of the domes- tic virtues ; and that love, honor and conjugal fidelity, were the dear and indisputable deities of our household ! It is without remedy : it is without antidote : it is without evasion ! Under such a visitation, how dreadful would be the destiny of the virtuous and the good, if the providence of our constitution had not given you the power, as, I trust, you will have the principle, to bruise the head of the serpent and crumble the altar of its idolatry ! But I do ask jou, of what materials must the man be composed, 206 THE BEND, \PPL1ED who could thus debase the national liberality ! What! was the re* compense of that lofty heroism which lias almost appropriated to the British navy the monopoly of mari ime renown, was that grateful offering which a weeping country pours into the lap of its patriot's widow, and into the cradle of its warrior's orphans, was that gen- erous consolation with which a nation's gratitude cheers the last moments of her dying hero, by the portraiture of his children sus- tained and ennobled by the legacy of his achievements, to be thus deliberately perverted into the bribe of a base, reluctant, unnat- ural prostitution I Oh ! I know of nothing to parallel the self- abasement of such a deed, except the audacity that requires an honorable jury to abet it ! Gracious God ! is it not enough to turn mercy herself into an executioner ! You convict for murder ; here is the hand that murdered innocence : you convict for treason ; here is the vilest disloyalty to friendship : you convict for robbery ; here is one who plundered virtue of her dearest jew r el, and dissolved it even in the bowl of that hospitality held out to him ! What ! Must I not only reveal this guilt, must I not only expose this perfidy, must I not only brand the infidelity of a wife and a mother ; but must I, amid the agonies of outraged nature, make the brother proof of the sister's prostitution ! Happy was it for Ireland that she had recovered her rights by victory, not stained by blood : not a victory bathed in the tears of a mother, a sister, or a wife : not a victory hanging over the grave of a Warren or a Montgomery, and uncertain wdiether to triumph in what she had gained, or to mourn over what she had lost ! Must we then realize that Hamilton is no more : must the sod, not yet cemented on the tomb of Washington, still moist with our tears, be so soon disturbed to admit the beloved companion of Washington ; the partner of his dangers ; the object of his confi- dence ; the disciple who leaned upon his bosom ! Insatiable Death ! will not the heroes and statesmen whom mad ambition has sent from the crimsoned fields of Europe suffice to people thy dreary dominions ! And in our infant country, how small w r as the remnant of our revolutionary heroes which had been spared from thy fatal grasp ! Could not our Warren, our Montgomery, our Mercer, our Greene, our Washington appease thy vengeance for a few short years ; shall none of our early patriots be permitted to behold the per- fection of their own work in the stability of our government and the maturity of our institutions ; or* hast thou predetermined, dread * Or disjunctive. This is the only instance of double interrogative exclamation with which I have met ; and I have met with this too late for insertion in its proper place. It is delivered, I need scarcely say, like a double interrogative sentence. THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 297 King of Terrors ! to blast the world's best hope, and, by depriving us of all the conductors of our glorious Revolution, compel us to bury our liberties in their tombs ! Hamilton ! great would be the relief of my mind, were I permitted to exchange the arduous duty of attempting to portray the varied excellence of thy charac- ter, for the privilege of venting the deep and unavailing sorrow which swells my bosom at the remembrance of the gentleness of thy nature : of thy splendid talents and placid virtues ! I tremble to think that I am called to attack, from this place, a crime, the very idea of which almost freezes one with horror : a crime, too, which exists among the polite and polished orders of society ; and which is accompanied with every aggravation : com- mitted with cool deliberation, and openly in the face of day ! And was there, my God ! no other sacrifice valuable enough : would the cry of no other blood reach the place of retribution and wake justice, dozing over her awful seat ! Had it not had its advocates, had not a strange preponderance of opinion been in favor of it, never, lamented Hamilton ! hadst thou thus fallen in the midst of thy days, and before thou hadst reached the zenith of thy glory ! that I possessed the talent of eulogy, and that I might be per- mitted to indulge the tenderness of friendship, in paying the last tribute to his memory ! that I were capable of placing this great man before you.* Approach, and behold, while I lift from his sepulchre its cover- ing ! Ye admirers of his greatness ! ye emulous of his talents and his fame ! approach and behold him now ! How pale ! how silent ! No martial bands admire the adroitness of his movements ; no fas- cinated throng weep, and melt, and tremble at his eloquence ! ^mazing change ! a shroud, a coffin, a narrow subterranean dwel- ling — this is all that now remains of Hamilton ! Where would be the spirit, where the courage of their slain fa- thers ? Snatched and gone from ignoble sons ! "What should we answer to the children we leave behind ; who will take their praise or their reproach, from the conduct of their sires, and those sires republicans ; who, rejecting from the train of their succession the perishing honors of a riband or a badge, are more nobly in- spired to transmit the unfading distinctions that spring from the resolute discharge of all the patriot's high duties ! Impious as well as insulting ! The leopard cannot change his spots or the Ethiopian his skin, but we, ive, are to put off our bod- ies and become unlike ourselves as the price of our safety ! When it happens that some of them are surrendered up, on ex- *Each of these exclamations is the first part of a single compact, beginning with if: tha •econd pert beginning with then being understood. If it icas so that, tf-c, thcn^-c. 298 THE BEND, SWEETS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. amination and allowance of the proofs, it is not unusual to advert to it as an indication of British justice and generosity ! The very act, which, to an abstract judgment, should be taken as stamping a seal upon the outrage by the acknowledgment it implies from themselves of the atrocity, is converted into the medium of homage and praise ! Inverted patriotism : drooping, downcast honor ! to derive a pleas- urable sensation from the insulting confession of a crime ! They did not know that the angel of the Lord would go forth with them, and smite the invaders of their sanctuary : they did not know that generation after generation, would, on this day, rise up and call them blessed ; that the sleeping quarry would leap forth to pay them voiceless homage ; that their names would be handed down, from father to son, the penman's theme and the poet's inspi- ration ; challenging, through countless years, the jubilant praises of an emancipated people, and the plaudits of an admiring world ! no ! they knew, only, that the arm wdiich should protect, was op- pressing them ; and they shook it off: that the chalice presented to their lips was a poisoned one ; and they dashed it away ! Sole survivor of an assembly of as great men as the world has witnessed, in a transaction, one of the most important that history records; what thoughts, what interesting reflections must fill his elevated and devout soul ! If he dwell on the past, how touching its recollections : if he survey the present, how happy ; how joy- ous ; how full of the fruition of that hope, which his ardent patri- otism indulged : if he glance at the future, how does the prospect of his country's advancement almost bewilder his weakened concep- tion ! Fortunate, distinguished patriot ! interesting relic of the past S Alas ! those attic da,ys are gone : that sparkling eye is quenched : that voice of pure and delicate affection, which ran with such bril- liancy and effect through the whole compass of colloquial mus^c, now bright with wit, now melting in tenderness, is hushed forever in the grave ! Thus lived and thus died our sainted Patriots ! May their spir- its still continue to hover over their countrymen, inspire their coun- cils, and guide them in the same virtuous and noble path ; and may that God, in whose hands are the issues of all things, confirm and perpetuate, to us, the inestimable boon which through their agency, he has bestowed, and make our Columbia the bright example for all the struggling sons of liberty around the globe ! Great Heaven ! how frail thy creature man is made : How by himself insensibly betrayed ! How blest the solitary's lot ; Who all-forgetting, all-forgot, Within his humble cell, THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 299 The cavern wild with tangling roots, Sits o'er his newly-gathered fruits, Beside his crystal well ! Our portion is not large, indeed, But then how little do w^ need ! Famine, plague, war, and an unnumbered throng Of guilt-avenging ills, to man belong ; What black, what ceaseless cares besiege our state : What strokes we feel from fancy and from fate I O happy plains, remote from war's alarms, And all the ravages of hostile arms ; And happy shepherds, who, secure from fear, On open downs preserve your fleecy care ; Whose spacious barns groan with increasing store, And whirling flails disjoint the creaking floor 1 How I dreamt Of things impossible ; Of joys perpetual in perpetual change ; Of stable pleasures on the tossing wave ; Eternal sunshine in the storms of life : How richly were my noontide trances hung With gorgeous tapestries of pictured joys; Joy behind joy, in endless perspective ! Life ! ask my life ! confess ! record myself A villain for the privilege to breathe, And carry up and down this cursed city A discontented and repining spirit, Burdensome to itself, a few years longer, To lose it, may be at last, in a lewd quarrel For some new friend, treacherous and false as thou art ! No. Oh Heaven ! that one might read the book of fate, And see the revolution of the times Make mountains level and the continent, Weary of solid firmness, melt itself Into the sea ; and, other times, to see The beachy girdle of the ocean Too wide for Neptune's hips : how chances mock, And changes fill the cup of alteration With divers liquors ! Ha! again. Said he, young Harry Percy's spur was cold : 300 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDE3 AND CLOSES APPLIED. Of hotspur, coldspur : that rebellion Had met ill luck ! Now bind my brows with iron, and approach The raggedest hour that time and spite dare bring, To frown upon the enraged Northumberland ; Let heaven kiss earth ; now let not nature's hand Keep the wild flood confined ; let order die ; And let this world no longer be a stage, To feed contention in a lingering act, But let one spirit of the first-born Cain Reign in all bosoms ; that, each heart being set On bloody courses, the rude scene may end, And darkness be the burier of the dead ! Oh, yet, for God's sake, go not to these wars ! [The time was, father, that you broke your word, When you were more endeared to it than now.] What ! is my lord of Winchester installed, And called unto a cardinal's degree ! She is beholden to thee, gentle youth ! Alas ! poor lady ! desolate and left ! Ha ! majesty ! how high thy glory towers When the rich blood of kings is set on fire ! What ! The kind Ismena That nursed me : watched my sickness ! What ! Love my foe : Love one descended from a race of tyrants, Whose blood yet reeks on my avenging sword ! Hippolitus !* Am I alive or dead ! Is this Elysium ! 'Tis he ! 'tis all Hippolitus ! Why look you so upon me ? I am but sorry, not afeared ! delayed, But nothing altered ! 'Would thou hadst less deserved ; That the proportion both of thanks and payment Might have been mine ! * This is not compellative, but a simple declarative exclamation; and should therefore t*» delivered with perfect close, THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. 301 THE MIXED SENTENCE, CIRCUMSTANCE AND PARENTHESIS I. THE MIXED SENTENCE. Rule XX. The mixed sentence is delivered in conformity to the rules which govern the delivery of the particular sentences of which it is composed. As the student is now supposed to be fully acquainted with every sentence in the English language, with its peculiar structure and the law of its delivery, and" consequently with all the elements which, in combination, form the mixed sentence, I will not trouble him in this place with examples, but simply refer him to the Classification, where a sufficient number for illus- tration and practice will be found. II. THE CIRCUMSTANCE. Rule XXI. At the beginning and in the middle of declarative, or declarative exclamatory sentences without partial close, and of the parts of sentences ending with partial close, the circumstance always terminates with the bend ; and at the end of such sentences and parts of sentences, it terminates with partial or perfect close. At the beginning, in the middle, and at the end of interrogative or interrogative exclamatory sentences, it conforms to the slide. A particular species of circumstance, of which " said he," " cried James," " answered Cor- nelius," &c, though not forming a part of the question which precedes them, and usually having the interrogative or exclamatory point between them and the question, is nevertheless delivered with a continuation of the same slide. For examples of this and of other circum- stances, for illustration and practice, I refer the student, as above, to the Classification. III. THE PARENTHESIS. Rule XXII. If the parenthesis follows a part of a sentence making imperfect sense, it terminates with the bend : if it follows partial or perfect close, that is to say, if it is placed between parts of a sentence making perfect loose, or between two sentences, it ends with the partial or perfect close. With regard to declarative parenthetical sentences, this rule, I believe, holds universally true :* interrogatives modify it somewhat. After imperfect sense, the rising slide being nearly allied to the bend, and having but a slight tendency to break the connection, is pretty fully developed ; but the falling slide, like the inferior sweep of emphasis, must return to the level of the sentence, or it will sever the connection altogether, like partial or perfect close, to which it is nearly related. After perfect sense, or partial and perfect close, the slides are unchecked. Apart from the termination, the parenthesis should be delivered according to the nature of the sentence of which it consists. To distinguish the parenthesis from the including sentence, it should, in general, be read with less force, or a lower tone of voice. I say in general, because the reverse of this is some- times necessary ; as when the parenthesis consists of a rapid and vehement question, or start- ling exclamation. The main thing is, to mark the parenthesis as such ; and as doing this gracefully is a necessary qualification of the good reader or speaker, I subjoin copious exam- ples for practice : including those already adduced in the Classification. Examples. We hold, you know, (and rightly too,) that all government is, or ought to be made and managed for the benefit of the people. * Except in cases in which writers hu\ e violated propriety in composition. 26 302 THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES APPLIED. And there will I nourish thee, (for yet there are five years of famine,) lest thou and thy household, and all that thou hast come to poverty. He had not been there, (as I was informed by those who lived in his neighborhood, and who were acquainted with him,) since the year 1796. Should liberty continue to be abused in this country, as it has been for some time past, (and though demagogues may not admit, yet sensible and observing men will not deny that it has been,) the people will seek relief in despotism or in emigration. The power of such characters in nature, says Mr. Whately, (from whom I am happy to borrow the following observations, not only from the beauty of their expression, but from their singular coincidence in the illustration of the fact I have been endeavoring to establish,) the power of such characters is not confined to the ideas which the objects themselves immediately suggest. No such claimant being found, (I mean none who knew the con- tents ; for many declared that they expected just such a packet, and believed it to be their property,) Mr. Blenner very coolly resolved to apply the money to his own use. I had often heard of my friend S — 's charming place, his excel- lent house, his every thing, in short, that great wealth (for he is a man of very large estate) could bestow, and taste, (for everybody talked of his and Mrs. L — 's taste,) could adorn. I pictured his groves, his lawns, and his waterfalls, with somewhat of that enthu- siasm for country scenery which you seem to feel ; and I thought of his daughters, (two elegant girls, whom I had just seen for a few moments in the way from New York,) as the wood-nymphs of the scene. On the other hand, by what I had almost called an accidental circumstance, but one which ought rather to be considered as a leading incident in the great train of events connected with the establishment of constitutional freedom in this country, it came to pass, that nearly all the colonies (founded as they were on the charters granted to corporate institutions in England, which had for their object the pursuit of the branches of trade pertinent to a new plantation,) adopted a regular representative system. That which was from the beginning, which we have heard, which we have seen with our eyes, which we have looked upon, and our hands have handled of the word of life ; (for the life was mani- fested, and we have seen it, and bear witness, and show unto you that eternal life which was with the Father, and was manifested unto us ;) that which we have seen and heard, declare we unto you, that ye also may have fellowship with us. Know ye not, brethren, (for I speak to them that know the THE BEND, SWEEPS, SLIDES AND CLOSES A.PPLIED. 303 law,) how that the law hath dominion over a man as long as he liveth ? Is it, (permit me to ask,) because this affords no immediate profit, that you refuse to pursue it ? Could he possibly have committed this crime, (I am sure he could not,) which, as all will acknowledge, is at variance with the character he has borne, and the whole tenor of his life ? And what now, (I ask you,) is to save us from the abuse of all this power $ What is to prevent our free democracy (especially when our country becomes crowded with people, as it will be by- and-by, even though our woods and prairies, and our cities are choked with men, almost stifling each other with their hot breath,) from following its natural bent, and launching us all, or those who come after us, in a wild and lawless anarchy ? She had managed this matter so well, (oh! she was the most artful of women !) that my father's heart was gone before I sus- pected it was in danger. It was represented by an analogy, (oh ! how inadequate !) which was borrowed from the religion of paganism. Shall we continue (alas ! that I should be constrained to ask the question !) in a course so dangerous to health, so enfeebling to mind, so destructive to character ? I washed (why should I deny it $') that it had been my case in- stead of my sister's. Him I am to leave here, being first cleansed of the deep dye with which, by my art, (and what art is it I am not familiar with ?) I have stained his skin to the darkest hue of the African. Sir, to borrow the words of one of your own poets, whose academic sojourn was in the next college to that in which we are now assembled, (and in what language but that of Milton, can I hope to do justice to Bacon and Newton ?) if their star should ever for a period go down, it must be to rise again with new splendor. Then went the captain with the officers and brought them with- out violence ; (for they feared the people, lest they should have been stoned ;) and when they had brought them, they set them before the council. Let the bishop be one that ruleth well his own house : having his children in subjection : (for if a man know not how to 1 ule his own house, how shall he take care of the Church of God ?') not a novice, lest being lifted up with pride, he fall Into condemnation of the devil. I will therefore chastise him and release him. (For of necessity, he must release one of them at the feast.) And they cried out all at once: saying, Away with this/ man and release unto us Barab- 304 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. has ; (who for a certain sedition made in the city, and for murder, was cast into prison.) Brethren ! be ye followers together of me, and mark them which walk so, as ye have us for an example. (For many walk, of whom I have told you often, and now tell you even weeping, that they are the enemies of the cross of Christ ; whose end is destruction ; whose god is their belly ; and whose glory is in their shame : who mind earthly things.) For our conversation is in heaven. God hath a special indignation against pride above all other sins ; and he will cross our endeavors, not because they are evil, (what hurt could there be in laying one brick upon another ; or in rearing a Babel more than any other edifice S) but because this business is proudly undertaken. Let me earnestly impress it on every one who wishes to be saved, (and if we do not, why approach the sanctuary of God : why hear the words of this book : why lift up a prayer to the throne of heaven in the name of the great Redeemer?) if you wish to be saved, go not into such society ; or if you enter it un- awares, remain not in it. CHAPTER VII. EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS, OR SENTENCES IN CONTINUOUS DISCOURSE. In the portion of this work on which we are about to enter, the student is gradually left, after the first three sections, to which I have appended copious notes, to his own resources in the analysis of sentential structure, and the application of preceding principles and rules. If, as is here supposed, he has carefully committed to memory and thoroughly digested those principles and rules, he will meet with no difficulty on the succeeding pages, which he cannot easily surmount : without such preliminary prep- aration he will probably stumble over the simplest passages ; and his progress, if he make any progress, will be slow, embar- rassed and extremely discouraging. As elsewhere, the diligent student will find here his merited reward : the indolent and heed- less, his appropriate punishment. In the notes succeedine; each of the first three sections I have EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 305 indicated the manner in which exercises in reading, or rehearsals before speaking, should be conducted : barely indicated ; for I have confined my attention to structure, emphasis and the rules of delivery. Of articulation, accent, and much under the head of modulation, especially key, force and rate, I have said nothing. What I have omitted will be supplied, I suppose, by the student himself, or his intelligent instructor : leaving nothing, in short, hitherto advanced, without pertinent use. For a distinct enumer- ation of the different topics to which attention should be given at a recitation, I refer to the beginning of Ch. Vlth. SEC. I. HAMLET'S INSTRUCTION TO THE PLAYERS. 1 Speak the speech, I pray you', as I pronounced it to you N : trippingly on the tongue x ; but if you mouth it, as many of our 2 players do', I had as lief the town-crier spake my lines. Nor do not saw the air too much with your hand thus, but use all gently'-; for in the very torrent, tempest, and, (as I may say,) whirlwind of your passion', you must acquire, and beget 3 a temperance, that may give it smoothness". 0, it offends me to the soul, to hear a robustious periwig-pated fellow tear a pas- sion to tatters, to very rags, to split the ears of the ground- lings x ; who, for the most part, are capable of nothing but inex- 4 plicable dumb shows, and noise. I would have such a fellow 5 whipped for o'erdoing Termagant x : it out-herods Herod. Pray 6 you, avoid it. Be not too tame neither', but let your own *7 discretion be your tutor. Suit the action to the word' ; the word to the action? : with this special observance^ : that you o'er- step not the modesty of nature^; for any thing so over-done is from the purpose of plaijing"; whose end, both at the first, and now, was, and is, to hold, as 'twere, the mirror up to nature^ : to show virtue her own feature^; scorn her own image K ; and 8 the very age and body of the time', his form, and pressure. Now this, overdone, or come tardy off', though it make the unskilful laugh, cannot but make the judicious grieve^; the censure of which one, must, in your allowance, o'erweigh a whole theatre 9 of others. 0, there be players, that I have seen play, and heard others praise, and that highly, (not to speak \X,profanely,} that, neither having the accent of Christians, nor the gait of Chris- tian, pagan, or man, have so strutted and bellowed, that I have thought some of nature's journeymen had made men, and not made the*n weV> : they imitated humanity so abominably. 26* 300 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. HAMLETS INSTRUCTION TO THE PLAYERS, RHETORICALLY PARSED. 1st Sentence. Question 1. What is the nature of this sentence V Answer. It is a compound declarative perfect loose sentence with two parts. Q. 2. What do you mean by a compound sentence? A. A sentence which contains either a single preposition, having two or more subjects and verbs, or two or more propositions* having indifferently one subject and verb, or two or more subjects and verbs. (See Classifica- tion : < ompound Stmt.) Q. 3. What, by a declarative sentence ? A. A sentence which states or declares some- thing in some one of the various relations of time, &c. (Sec Ciassif. Decl. Sent.) Q. 4. What, by a loose sentence ? A. A sentence which contains two or more distinct though related propositions, connected by conjunctions, adverbs or relative pronouns expressed or understood. (See Ciassif. Loose Scut.) Q. 5. What, by a perfect loose F A. A sentence which has the construction of all its parts complete. (See Ciassif. ibid.) Q. 6. You say this perfect loose sentence consists of two parts: what is the nature of the sentence in the first part i A. Jt is a compound declarative imperfect loose, with two sub- parts: the first ending with you, and the second with tongue. Q. 7. What do you mean by an imperfect loose V A. A loose sentence which has its first part complete, but the succeeding part or parts fragmentary : requiring a portion of the first part (understood) to complete their construction. (See Ciassif., as above.) Q. 8. What is the nature of the sub-parts 5 A. The first ending with you, is a declarative single compact of the second form. Q. 9. What do you mean by a compact sentence ? A. A sentence always consisting of two parts: each of which begins with a word which relates to another word at the beginning of the other. (See Ciassif. Compact Sent.) Q. 10. What, by the second form 5 A. Compact sentences have these correlative words, sometimes both expressed; sometimes, only one of them; mid sometimes both are under- stood. If both are expressed, the compact belongs to the first form : if only one, to the second : if neither is expressed, to the third. (Sec Ciassif., as above.) Q. 11. What is the nature of the second sub-part ? A. It is a simple declarative sentence : having the clause, speak the speech, understood before trippingly. Q. 12. What is a simple sentence 5 A. A sentence having but one subject and one verb. (See Ciassif. Simple Sent.) Q. 13. We have now analyzed one of the parts of the perfect loose sentence ; what is the nature of the second ? A. It is a mixed sentence. Q. 14. What do you mean by a mixed sentence f A. A sentence consisting of two or more sentences of the same kind, or of different kinds combined. (See Ciassif. .Mixed Sent.) Q. 15. Are the sentences combined here of the same, or different species A. Of the same : both being single compacts of the second form : the greater comprehending, having the relative words if— then, and the less comprehended, the relative words so — as. Q. 16. What is the proper punctuation between the principal parts of this sentence ; that is, before but f A. The semicolon ; because the connective but is expressed. (See Punctua- tion, Semicolon.) Q. 17. What is the proper punctuation between the sub-parts of the first principal part ; that is, before trippingly J A. The colon | because the connective, namely or that is, is under- stood. Q. 18. In the first sub-part you have the clause, J pray you : what is the rhetorical name of it 5 1 A. A circumstance. Q. 19. What is the nature of a circumstance ? A. It is a part of a sentence necessary to the sense, but not the construction. (See Ciassif. Circumstance.) Q. 20. Is it necessary to the sense in tills place 1 A. Yes ; for if it were not inserted, the request of Hamlet would be a command. Q. 21. How is a circumstance always punctuated ? A. At the beginning of perfect sense it is alw-iys followed, in the middle, preceded and followed, and at the end preceded, by a comma : at the end, it is of course followed by one of the pauses of perfect sense. (See Ciassif, as above.) Q. 22. What is the proper punctuation of the second principal part ? A. As it makes imperfect sense until completed, the comma only can be inserted, as in the text, between the parts of the less and greater compacts. (See Punctuation, Comma, and Ciassif. Sing. Compact. ) Q. 23. What is meant by the general delivery of a sentence ? A. Its delivery apart from the consideration of emphasis ; that is, its characteristic delivery. Q. 24. What is the general delivery of the whole perfect, loose sentence ? A. (See Rule IX.) Q. 25. What, of the first part, or imperfect loose sentence ? A. (See Ibid.) Q. 26. What, of the second part, or mixed sentence ? A. (See Rule XX.) , Q. 27. What, of the circumstance in the first part f A. (See Ride XXI.) Q. 28. Can you tell me which are the emphatic words ? A. Pronounced, mouth, many, town-crier. Q. 29. What is the effect of emphasis on each f A. On pronounced and iowo-cricr, being in the same short division of sense with close, the lower sweep is converted into the falling slide to close : (See Emph., Sec. II. 2. 5 :) on mouth and many, emphasis has a full develop- EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 307 ment of both sweeps : there being ample room for it between these words and the pauso on either hand. (See Empk., Sec. II. 1.) 30. Now deliver the sentence. 2d Sentence. Q. 1. What kind of sentence is this f A. Before I answer this question, I must make an Observation or two on the use of nor and for in this place. JVoris used here precisely as if preceded by another negative member of the same sentence, beginning with neittit r or not : as if, instead of the sentence already analyzed, the author had written as follows : -Neither speak the speech differently from the manner in which I pro- nounced it, nor saw the air too much with your hand thus; but," &c, or as lbllows: "Do not speak the speech differently from the manner 1 pronounced it, nor saw the ah with your hand thus ; but," &c. Should we adopt the first construction, the whole sentence will be a compound declarative perfect loose, consisting of three parts : the first terminating with thus, and comprising a sin- gle compact with neither — nor, for correlative words ; the second, a simple declarative ; and the third a compound declarative close. Should we adopt the second construction, the whole Bentence will be a double compact with the first and third part expressed: the first or nega- tive part comprising two members, and the thud, forming a perfect loose, consisting of two parts. The word for is here used as the equivalent of and. In its proper force, it should introduce a reason for something going before ; but this is not the case : it simply repeats the preceding sentiment in another form. The propriety of substituting and, will readily be perceived by employing it. I should add, perhaps, that if for was here used in its proper sense, that is, as the equivalent of because, the whole sentence would be a double compact with three of its parts expressed : the first, third and fourth ; that is, the negative with two members, the affirmative opposed to the negative, and the reason for this affirmative. On the whole, of the two methods of construction noticed above, I prefer the second ; namely, that which makes the whole sentence a declarative double compact with the first and third part expressed. Q. 2. What is a double compact sentence ? A. It is a sentence consisting of two single compacts: each having the correlative words therefore — because or for, and the two together comprising four parts : the first, a negative, the second, an affirmative or negative assigning a reason for the preceding negative, the third an affirmative opposed to the first, and the fourth an affirmative or negative assigning a reason for the third. (See Classif. Double Compact.) Q. 3. You have said the thud proposition, in the present instance, beginning with but, con- tains a perfect loose sentence in two parts : what is the nature of the sentence in each part ? A. The first, ending with gently, is a simple declarative sentence : (see Sentence 1st, 11, 12 and Reference :) the second is a compound declarative close. Q. 4. Will you define a close sentence ? A. It is one which contains a single proposition, comprising two or more subjects and verbs. (See Classif. Compound Close.) Q. 5. What unusual appendage has this sentence. ? A. It includes a parenthesis ; by which is meant a sentence or part of a sentence, included in another sentence or part of a sen- tence, and neither necessary to the sense nor construction. (See Classif. Parenthesis.) Q. 6. What is the proper punctuation between the first and third part of the double compact ; that is, between thus and but 5 A. The comma. (See Classif. Double Compact.) Q. 7. What, between the parts of the third ; that is, between gently and for ? A. The semicolon. (See Sentence 1. 16.) Q. 8. What shoxdd be the punctuation of the parenthesis ? A. The parenthesis must al- ways have the same pause after it, as before it. As it is inserted here after imperfect sense, the comma, if any, should be inserted before and therefore after it. I say if any, because strictly speaking none should be inserted ; for if the parenthesis were absent, and and whirl- wind could not be separated by any pause. (See Classif. Parenthesis.) Q. 9. What is the general delivery of a double compact ? A. The first part, if consisting of a single member, is delivered with the waving slide ; that is, the slide formed by the sweeps of emphasis more or less fully developed : if comprising two or more members, each of these should be delivered in the same maimer except the last ; which may either be deliv- ered in the same manner or with partial close. (See Rule VIII.) In the present instance, we have this choice ; for the effect of nor (see above) is precisely the same as if the member im- plied by it was really expressed. The succeeding propositions or parts of a double compact are delivered relatively like parts of a perfect loose sentence. (See 1st Sentence, 24, and Rule IX.) Q. 10. What are the emphatic words \ A. Thus, gently, whirlwind, temperance and smoothness. Q. 1 1. Is emphasis on each of these words of the same kind ? A. No : that on whirlwind is deferred emphasis. Q. 12. What do you mean by deferred emphasis ? A^ In theory torrent, tempest and whirlwind, are equally emphatic ; hut in practice, the emphasis is deferred to the last, to a^oid the recurrence of similar sounds. (Sec Emphasis, Sec I. 3.) Q. 13. What is the effect of emphasis on each ? A. If the negative part should be de- livered with the waving slide, the emphasis on thus will have its lower sweep limited to the Word : if it terminates with partial close, the emphasis will coincide with it. (See Emph^ Sec 308 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. /. 3. 4.) On gently and smoothness, emphasis coincides with partial and perfect close: on temperance, the lower sweep is confined to the word : (See Emph., Sec. II. 2:) on whirlwind a fidl development of the sweeps. {See Emph., Sec. I. 1.) 14. Deliver the sentence. 3d Sentence. Q. 1. "What kind of sentence is this? A. A compound declarative perfect loose with two parts. (See 1st Sentence, 1 — 5.) Q. 2. What is the sentence in the first of these parts? A. A compound declarative close, (sec 2d Sentence, 4,) preceded by the variable exclamation O ; which is here a mere key-note to what follows. (See Ch. VI. .Simple Spontaneous Exclamations, 2. 5.) (J. 3. What, in the second part 5 A. Also a compound declarative close: it includes a circumstance ; namely, for the most part. (See Sent. 1st, 18-21.) Q. 4. What is the proper punctuation between the parts? A. The semicolon ; for the connective who is expressed. (See Sent. 1st, 16.) Q. 5. What is the proper punctuation of the parts separately considered. A. The comma shoidd be inserted between its principal members. (See Sent. 2d, 4.) Q. 6. What is the general delivery of the whole ? (See Sent. 1st, 24.) Q. 7. What of each part ? (See Rule VI.) Q. 8. Which are the emphatic words? A. Soul, rags, groundlings, most and noise. Rags and noise, deferred emphasis. (Sec 2d Sentence, 12.) Q. 9. What is the effect in each case 5 On soul and rags, circumflex : on most, full de- velopment : on groundlings and noise, it coincides with partial close. (See Sent. 1st, 29, 2d, 13.) 10. Deliver the sentence. 4th Sentence. Q. 1. What is the name of this sentence ? A. It is a compound declarative perfect loose with two parts like the preceding sentence ; which see. Q. 2. What, of the parts ? A. They are both simple declarative sentences. (See Sent. 2d, 3.) Q. 3. What pause should separate them ? A. A colon. (See Classification, Loose Sen- tence ; and Punctuation, Colon.) Q. 4. What is the general delivery of the whole sentence ? A. (See Sent. 3d, 6.) Q. 5. Are there any emphatic words ? A. Yes : Termagant and Herod ; on both of which emphasis coincides with close. 6. Deliver the sentence. 5th Sentence. Q. 1. What is the nature of this sentence ? A. A compound declarative close : including the circumstance, " Pray you." (See. Sent. 1st, 18-21 : see also Sent. 3«/, 2.) Q. 2. What is the general delivery of a close sentence ? A. (See Rule VI.) Q. 3. What are the emphatic words ? A. Pray and avoid. Q. 4. What is the effect ? A. The emphasis on pray, has the upper sweep cut off in consequence of falling on the first word in the sentence ; (see Emph., Sec. II. 2 ;) and on avoid, it has the lower sweep converted into the falling slide. (See Emphasis, Sec. II. 5.) 5. Deliver it. 6th Sentence. Q. 1. What name do you give this sentence ? A. It is a double compact, with the 1st and 3d part expressed. (See Sent. 2d, 2.) Q. 2. How should it be punctuated? A. With a comma between the parts. (See 2d Sent., 6.) Q. 3. What is the general delivery ? A. (See2dSe?it.,9, and also Rule VIII.) Q. 4. What are the emphatic words ? A. Tame and tutor. Q. 5. The effect ? A. On tame, full development : on tutor, emphasis coincides with per- fect close. 6. Deliver it, *7th Sentence. Q. 1. What? A. A compound declarative perfect loose in five parts: ending respectively with the words, action, observance, naturc,playing, and pressure. Q. 2. What is the sentence in the first part ? A. A declarative single compact of the third form : the correlative words understood, so — as. (See Class., Sing. Comp. 3d form.) Q. 3. In the second part ? A. Simple declarative with the clause " but do it," going before, understood. (See Sent. 1st, 11, 12, and Reference.) Q. 4. In third part ? A. Simple declarative as in the preceding. Q. 5. In fourth part ? A. A mixed sentence, so — as this would be. (See Sent. 1.14.) Q. 6. In the fifth? A. Compound declarative imperfect loose. (See 1st Sent., 6*7.) Q. 7. Having how many parts ; and what is the nature of these parts ? A. It comprises two parts : the "first, including the circumstance " as 'twere," being a compound declarative close, and the second, either close or imperfect loose, as it may be treated. I treat it as im- perfect loose. EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 309 Q. 8. What pauses, should ho inserted between the principal parts ? A. A colon between the first and second, that is, between action and with, because the connective but is under- stood " (see Punct., Colon :) a colon between second and third, because the connective namely is understood: a semicolon between third and fourth, and fourth and tilth, because the connectives for and whose are expressed. (See Punct., Semicolon, and also Classify Loose Sent.) Q. 9. How should the sub-parts of the last principal part be separated ? A. By a colon ; for and, the connective belbre to show, is understood; and the sequent semicolons are em- ployed between the subordinate sub-parts, because and is expressed. Q. 10. What is the general delivery of the entire sentence T A. (See Sent. 3d, 6.) Q. 11. What are the emphatic words ? A. Word, action, observance, nature, overdone, playing, nature, feature, image, body, pressure: on body and pressure, the emphasis is deferred. Q. 12. What is the effect in each case f A. On action, observance, nature, playing, nature, feature, image and pressure, the emphasis coincides with partial or perfect close : on word and overdone, it produces the circumflex : on overstep and body, it is attended by a full de- velopment of the sweeps. 13. Deliver the sentence. 8th Sentence. Q. 1. This sentence : What ? A. A compound declarative perfect loose with two parts, properly separated by the semicolon : the relative which being expressed. Q. 2. In each part, what 5' A. In the first, a compound declarative mixed sentence : having two compacts interwoven. The greater has the correlative words if— then, both un- derstood: the less, though — yet; the first of which is expressed. (For the punctuation, see Compact Sentence.) In the second, we have a simple declarative sentence, including a circum- stance : in your allowance. Q. 3. What are the emphatic words ? A. Laugh, judicious, grieve, one, others. Q. 4. What is the nature of the emphasis on laugh and grieve, one and others ? A. It is antithetic. (See for a full explanation of this, Emphasis, Sec. I. 2.) In theory, unskilful and judicious are also under antithetic emphasis ; but to avoid harshness, it is better to defer the emphasis to the last word. Q. 5. What is the effect? A. On laugh, one and j udicious, it produces circumflex: on grieve and others, it coincides with partial and perfect close, C. Deliver it 9th Sentence. Q. 1. What is it f A. Comp. decl. perfect loose, in two parts: the 1st, containing a sim- ple decl. parenthesis and a single compact circumstance of the first form, neither — nor, the correlative words, is a mixed sentence ; combining close declarative at the beginning, with a single compact at the end, having the correlative words so — that : the second is a simple declarative. Q. 2. What, the emphatic words; and what effect? A. Highly, profanely, Christian and man with circumflex : journeyman with full development: well and abominably, with partial and perfect close. 3. Deliver the sentence. SEC. H. HAMLET'S SOLILOQUY. 1 To be, or not to be 9 That is the question^: Whether 'tis nobler in the mind, to suffer 2 The slings and arrows of outrageous fortune' Or take up arms against a sea of troubles, 3 And, by opposing, end them. To die — to sleep. No more ? and, by a sleep, to say we end 4 The heart-ache, and the thousand natural shocks 5 That flesh is heir to ? 'Tis a consummation 6 Devoutly to be wished. To die — to sleep": To sleep ! perchance to dream'! Ay": there's the rub K , *7 For in that sleep of death what dreams may come, When we have shuffled off this mortal coil', Must give us pause. There's the respect 310 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. That makes calamity of so long life ; For who would bear the whips and scorns of time, The oppressor's wrong, the proud man's contumely, The pangs of despised love, the law's delay, The insolence of office, and the spurns That patient merit of the unworthy takes, When he himself might his quietus make 8 With a bare bodkin V who would fardels bear, To groan and sweat under a weary life ; But that the dread of something after death, That undiscovered country, from whose bourn No traveller returns, puzzles the will, And makes us rather bear those ills we have, Than fly to others that we know not of ? Thus conscience does make cowards of us dU>; And thus the native hue of resolution 9 Is sicklied o'er with the pale cast of thought ; And enterprises of great pith and moment, With this regard, their currents turn awry, And lose the name of action. HAMLET'S SOLILOQUY RHETORICALLY PARSED. 1st Sentence. Q. 1. What kind of sentence is this ? A. A double interrogative sentence. Q. 2. What is a double interrogative ? A. It is a single compact declarative, employed interrogatively : having whether — or, for correlative words. When so employed, the first of the correlative words, {whether,) is almost uniformly suppressed. {See Classification, Sec. II. Class II. Preliminary Remarks.) Q. 3. Is the sentence complete, or fragmentary ? A . Fragmentary : if completed, it would read thus: "Am I to be after death, or am I not to be v The construction of the second part of a double interrogative is scarcely ever complete. (See preceding reference.) Q. 4. What is the proper punctuation between the parts 5 A. That of the compact sen- tence, the comma ; or, in cases of allowable deviation, the semicolon. {See Punc., Dcv. 1.) Q. 5. Is not the sign of interrogation often inserted between the parts 5 1 A. Yes ; but then it represents one or the other of these pauses. {See Punct., Sec. II. 1.) Q. 6. What is the general delivery 5" A. The first part is delivered with the rising slide to the disjunctive or, and the second part, with the falling slide from it. {See Rule XVII.) Q. 7. What are the emphatic words in this sentence 5 A. Be and not. Q. 8. What the effect of emphasis on these words ? A. The only effect on be, is to pro- duce a dip or indentation in the rising slide : {see Emph., Sec. II. 7. 10 :) on not, it defers the falling slide until that word is reached ; and it is reached by a level delivery, or by an upper sweep. {See Emph., Sec. II. S. 10.) 9. Deliver the sentence. 2d Sentence. Q. 1. What sentence is this ? A. A compound declarative perfect loose, with two parts : the first, a simple declarative, and the second, including a circumstance, a single compact of the first form : correlative words whether — or. {See Hamlet's Soliloquy, 8th Sent.) If the construction of this sentence was complete, it would have three pans : it being necessary to supply a third, to make out the connection of thought, thus: "That is the question;" which is equivalent to another ; namely, " Whether 'tis nobler in the mind to suffer," &c. &c. Q. 2. What should be the punctuation of the sentence as it 6tands ? A. A colon should separate the two parts ; for an entire part and two connectives are understood. {See Punct., Colon* and Loose Sent., Classification.) Q. 3. What pause should be inserted between the parts of the compact in the second part ? A. A comma ; for the first part makes imperfect sense. (See Punct., Comma*, ai*d Classification, Compact Sent.) EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 311 Q 4. What is the general law for the delivery of a perfect loose f A. (See Rule IX.) Q. 5. What are the emphatic words V A. Question, suffer, anus and end. Q. 6. What the elfect of emphasis on each 5 A. Emphasis on question, coincides with partial close : on suffer and arms, it produces a full development of the sweeps : on end, in consequence of the proximity of this word to close, it has its lower sweep converted into the falling slide. 7 Deliver the sentence. 3d Sentence Q. 1. What ? A. A simple declarative, with the verb is understood. ty». 2. Why is the rhetorical pause inserted after die ? A. Because the verb is omitted ; and more especially because the sentence is thereby broken. (See Punct. Rhet. P.) Q. 3. What is the general delivery of a simple declarative ? A. (See Rule I.) Q. \. What is the emphatic word ? A. Sleep ; and emphasis on it coincides with perfect close 5. Deliver the sentence, 4th Sentence. Q. 1. How do you name this sentence? A. It is a fragmentary compound perfect loose definite interrogative, consisting of two parts, properly separated by the semicolon ; which is here represented by the rising slide : by the semicolon, because the connective and is ex- pressed. (See Punctuation, Semicolon, and Classification, Loose Sentence.) Q. 2. What do you mean by a definite interrogative ? A. (See Classification, Class II. Sec. II. Loose Def. Int.) Q. 3. You say fragmentary : in what respect ? A. No more, is an abbreviation of " Is to die no more than to sleep ?" Q. 4. What is the nature of this first part of the perfect loose ? A . It is a single com- pact of the first form, with the correlative words brought together in the middle. (-See Classification, Compound Sent., Sing. Comp.) Q. 5. What is the nature of the sentence in the second part ? A. A compound close interrogative. It includes the circumstance "by a sleep." (See Classification.) Q. 6. What is the general law for the delivery of a loose definite interrogative ? A. (See Rule XII.) Q. 7. What are the emphatic words ? A. More, by and heir. Q. 8. What the effect in each case J A. A mere dip or indentation in the rising slide. (See Empk., Sec. II. 7.) 9. Deliver the sentence. 5th Sentence. Q. 1. What kind of sentence is this ? A. It is a simple declarative, with emphasis on the last word coinciding with perfect close. (See Sentence 3d.) Q. 2. Will you deliver the sentence ? 6th Sentence. Q. 1. What sentence is this ? A. A fragmentary compound decl. exclam. perfect loose sentence. Written out fully, it would appeal- thus : " To die is to sleep ; but if to die is to sleep ! then, perchance it is also to dream !" It comprises, it will be observed, two parts : the first, a simple declarative, (see sentence 3d,) and the second, a single compact. Q. 2. But why do you treat the second part as compact §" A. Because Hamlet is reason- ing; he reasons logically; and the compact sentence is necessary to his logic. He had already reached the conclusion that death is a sleep, and had said that if by sleep, we could understand an end of all the evil to which flesh is hen, it is a consummation devoutly to be wished ; but that the sleep of death should be taken in this sense, is not so clear to his mind. He therefore repeats his previous conclusion as a new premise ; and the logical inference at once strikes him ; namely, that if to die is to sleep, then, like sleep, death also may have its dreams. By many the repetition " To sleep !" is treated as a definite interrogative exclamation. Dr. Porter (see Analysis of Rhetorical Delivery,) treats it as such. But this is to make Hamlet ask a question which he had already satisfactorily answered ; for he had already decided that death is a sleep ; and it remained to determine only, whether death is not something more than sleep. To this, " To sleep !" employed as a question, is not relevant. To treat it as ■such, is therefore not admissible. Should it be suggested, that if "To sleep !" is not equivalent to "Is to die to sleep?'" it may be, nevertheless, to " Is to die no more than to sleep ?" my reply is, that this is to make Hamlet ask the same question twice over ; for this is precisely the question in verse 4th : and without irresistible reasons for it, its repetition is not to be supposed : especially when such a repetition is manifestly incompatible with that strictly logical and philosophical character •which Shakr.peare has ascribed to the speaker. Q. 3. What pause should separate the simple declarative part from the single compact 1 A. A colon ; because the connective but is imderstood. 312 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. Q. 4. What pause does the exclamation point ni'i I also the excl. point aftei dreams, represent? A. After sleep, that is, between parts of the compact, it represents the semicolon; lor both the correlative words are understood. (See Classif. .Single Compact, ex- ception to Punctuation.) At the end of the sentence, it represents the period. Q. 5. What is the general law of delivery for the entire loose Sentence ? A. (See Rule IX.) Q. 6. Does the fragmentary character of the single compact in the second part, in any way modify its delivery ? A. No. The fragments should be delivered precisely as if the sentences were complete. (See Rule VII. Gen. Note, 1.) Q. 7. What are the emphatic words 5 A. Sleep, sleep and dreams. Q. 8. What is the effect of emphasis in each instance ? A. Emphasis on sleep, at the end of the simple declarative, coincides with partial close; on slcejj, at the end of the first part of the single compact, it produces circumflex ; and on dreams it coincides with perfect close. Tho exclamatory character of the sentence must not be overlooked. This gives breadth and in tensity to the emphasis. 9. Deliver the sentence. 7th Sentence. Q. 1. Of what kind is it ? A. Ay being the representative of the preceding last part of the single compact, "It is perchance to dream," (see Class if., Simple Dcclar. Sentences,) it may form either a distinct part of the whole sentence, or the first part of a single compact, of which "There's the rub" shall form the second ; that is, as if written thus: " Ay\ ; and there's the rub" ;" or thus: u Ay', and there's the rub\ n Or which is the same thing, either thus, "It is perchance to dream v ; and there's the rub s ;" or thus: "It is perchance to dream', and there's the rub v ." If treated in the latter way, that is, as pail oS»a single compact of the third form, the correlative words to be supplied are so — as, thus : "as it is perchance to dream', so there's the rw6\" In this case ay, being by supposition the last word of the first part, immediately preceding an intermediate pause and under emphasis, will be delivered with circumflex ; and the pause between it and the second part, should be a semicolon ; because the correlative words are both understood. I prefer, however, to treat it as forming by itself a distinct part of the entire sentence ; and the entire sentence, consequently, as a declarative perfect loose in three parts : the first part comprising ay, a simple declarative sentence, the second, ending with rub, another simple declarative, and the third with pause ; which is a mixed sentence. I prefer this, because the delivery of ay under emphasis in combination with partial close, it seems to me, is more in consonance with the gravity of the train of thought, than its combination with the bend, producing circumflex. The latter demands a tone of surprise, irony or exultation; and either of these is irrelevant. Q. 2. You say the third part is a mixed sentence : (see Classif, Mixed Sentences :) what combination does it contain 5 A. A combination of simple declarative and single compact : the latter, having the correlative words then— when, the last of which only is expressed, forms the subject, or nominative case, of the former. " In that sleep of death" is a circumstance. (See Class if., Circumstance.) Q. 3. What is the general delivery of the whole perfect loose ? A. (See Rule IX.) Q. 4. What are the emphatic words f and the effect of emphasis on them ? A. Ay, rub, what and pause. Emphasis on ay, rub and pause coincides with partial and perfect close: (see Emph., Sec. II. 4 :) on what it has a very full development of the sweeps. (See ibid. Sec. II. 1.) 5. Deliver the sentence. 8th Sentence. Q. 1. What is the proper name of this sentence \ A. It is a semi-interrogative sentence ; that is, a sentence in part declarative or exclamatory, and in part interrogative. (See Classif, Class II. dcfinitioyis and examples.) Q. 2. What is the sentence in the declarative portion ? A. Compound close. Q. 3. In the interrogative portion ? A. Indefinite imperfect loose. Q. 4. What do you mean by indefinite T A. See Class if cation, Class II. 2.) Q. 5. Why do you say imperfect loose ? A. Because for must be supplied before the second part. (See definition of Imperfect Loose in Classif.) Q. 6. Of how many parts does the interrogative portion consist F A. Two parts. Q. 1. What is the nature of the sentence in the first 5 A. It is a compound compact in- definite of Ihe second form : having the correlative words when — then, reversed. Q. 8. What is the second part ? A. A compound perfect loose with two parts : the first ending with life, and the second with the end of the sentence: the former being a compound close, and the latter a mixed sentence ; combining a compound close in the beginning, with a single compact at the end. Q. 9. What is the nature of the connection between the declarative and interrogative por- tions of the semi-interrogative f A. Loose ; that is to say, the two together form a perfect loose sentence. (See Classif, Scmi-interrog. for similar examples.) Q. 10. What is the general delivery of a semi-interrogative 5 A. (See Rule XVIU~> also EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 313 Rule XV. and XIII., and especially the subjoined remark on the modification of the last Ruiz, by length of sentence.) Q. 11. What lire the emphatic words La the declarative portion? A. There's, calamity, life. Q. 12. The effect on each f _A. On there's, hill development* on calamity, the lower sweep is confined to the word: a pause being possible after it: (See Punct. Comma: Cases of Omission, 5:) and on life, the emphasis coincides with partial close. Q. 13. What are the emphatic words in the first part of the interrogative portion ? A. Who, time, wrong, continually, love, delay, office, unworthy, bodkin. Q. 14. The effect? A. These emphatic words collectively convert the uninterrupted falling slide into an interrupted descent through a succession of levels : each of Wheni having the same effect on so much of the sentence as lies between it and the preceding emphatic word ; that ;3 to say, it defers the falling slide on that portion of the sentence mild the emphasis is reached ; when the voice descends to a lower point, and proceeds in the same manner until the next emphasis is reached ; and thus to the end. (See Empli., Sec. II. fc.) Q. 15. What are the emphatic words in the second part f A. Fardels, life, have, others and of. Q. 16. What is the effect ? A. The same a3 in the preceding pail ; except that the last member of the sentence being compact, and the emphasis on have, others and of, antithetic, it becomes necessary to mark these circumstances by delivering have, immediately preceding the intermediate pause, with circumflex, and others, not so situated, with a full development of the emphatic sweeps. 17. Deliver the entire semi-interrogative, 9th Sentence. Q. 1. Describe this sentence. A. It is a compound declarative perfect loose, with three parts : the first, ending with all, and the second with thought, are simple declaratives ; and the third, is a compound close. The parts are properly separated by the semicolon, ■because the connective and is in both instances expressed. (For the general delivery, see Rule IX.) The emphatic words are all, thought and action, coinciding with partial and perfect close, moment having circumflex, and this, full development of the emphatic sweeps. Thus, in both instances, and with this regard, are circumstances. Q. 2. Will you deliver the sentence? SEC. HI. THE SPEECH OF^BRUTUS. 1 Romans, countrymen, and lovers ! hear me for my cause', and be silent that you may hear x : believe me for mine honor', and have respect to mine honor, that you may believe"" : cen- sure me in your wisdom', and awake your senses, that you may the better judge". 2 If there be any in this assembly 7 , any dear friend of Casar's', to him, I say, that Brutus' 's love to Caesar 7 , was no less than 3 his\ If, then, that friend demand why Brutus rose against Caesar 7 , this is my answer*" : not that I loved Caesar less', but 4 that I loved Rome more". Had you rather Caesar were living', and die all slaves, than that Caesar were dead, to live aW. freemen ? 5 As Caesar loved me 7 , 1 weep for him'-: as he was fortunate', I rejoice at it : as he was valiant/, I honor him ; but as he was ambitious', 6 I slew him>. There is tears for his love 7 , joy for his fortune 7 , 7 honor for his valor', and death for his ambition\ Who 's here 8 so base, that would be a bondman ? If any', speak"- ; for him 9 have I offended. Who's here so rude, that would not be a Ro- 10 man $ If any', speak"- ; for him have I offended. 11 Who's here 12 so vile, that will not love his country % If any', speak""', for 27 314 EXERCISES UN PARAGRAPHS. 13 him have I offended\ I pause for a reply. 14 None!—* 15 Then none have I offended. 10 I have done no more to Ccesar^, 17 than you shall do to Brutus. The question of his death is en- rolled in the capitoV- : his glory not extenuated, -wherein he was worthy 7 , nor his offences enforced for which he suffered death*". 18 Here comes his body, mourned by Mark Antony^; who, though he had no hand in his death, shall receive the benefit of his dy- ing'' : a place in the commonwealths ; as which of you shall not ? — With this I depart" : that, as I slew my best lover for the good 19 of Rome', I have the same dagger for myself, when, it shall please my country to need my death>. THE SPEECH OF BRUTUS RHETORICALLY PARSED. 1st Sentence. The exclamatory part of this sentence is compound compellative ; (See Classification ;) and? what follows is compound declarative perfect loose in three parts, properly separated by the- colon. (See Punct. Colon, and Classif. Perfect Loose.) The parts may be treated either a* single compacts of the third form, with lohen—thcn or as— so, for correlative words ; or as close declaratives. I prefer the latter. For the general delivery, see Rule IX. The emphatic words are those marked as such. On cause, honor, wisdom, senses, the lower sweep, confined to the word : on may it converts the lower sweep into falling slide : on believe and judge, it coincides with partial and perfect close. 2d Sentence. A compound declarative single compact of the second form. For the punctuation, see Punct. Comma, and Classsif. Sing: Compact : for the general delivery, see Rule VII. The emphatic words are Casar's, him, Brutus's and his. On the first two, the lower sweep is con- fined to the word ; on the third, full development ; and on the last, coincides with perfect close. Id Sentence. A compound declarative perfect loose in two parts, properly separated by the colon, be- cause namely is understood. (See Punct., Colon.) In the first part we have a single compact of the second form, if— then, correlative words, and in the second part, the same with correla- tive words indeed — but. For the punctuation, see 2d Sentence. For general delivery, see Rule IX. The emphatic words are against, answer, not, less, more. On against and not, empha- sis produces full development : on answer and more, it coincides with partial and perfect close ■ on less, it is exhausted on the word. 4th Sentence. A compound definite interrogative single compact, of the first form : correlative words rather — than. For the general delivery, see Rule XI. The emphasis on living, slaves, dead^freemen, antithetic For its effect, see Emph., Sec. II. 7. 5th Sentence. A perfect loose declarative, in tour parts ; each of which is a single compact of the first form : the correlative words so — as, it will be observed, are here equivalent to because — there- fore. A colon, the proper punctuation between the,first and second, and the second and third part, because the connective is understood : a semicolon between the third and fourth, because the connective is expressed. Full development of emphasis on loved ; lower sweep exhausted on fortunate, valiant and ambitious, and on weep, rejoice, honor and slew, converted into the 'falling slide. 6th Sentence. Either a single compact of the third form, with and substituted for the last of the correlative words as— so, (as there is tears, &c so death, &c.,) or a close declarative. Punctuation and general delivery the Same on either hypothesis. Emphasis on all the words marked as em- piiatic* produces full development. EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 315 7th Sentence. A compound indefinite interrogative close. Emphasis on who and bondman. Who being the first word of the sentence, the slide, of course, is here not deferred at all. (See Emph., Sec. II. 6.) Sth Sentence. A compound decl. perfect loose, in two parts : the first a single compact : the second, a simple declarative. A semicolon between the parts, because for, the connective, is expressed. Em- phasis on speak and offended coincides with partial and perfect close: on him, the lower sweep is exhausted on the word ; for a pause is possible after it in consequence of the inversion of the sentence. (See Punct., Omissions of the Comma, 4.) 9th Sentence. A compound indefinite interrogative close. (See 1th Sentence.) Emphasis on rude and Ro- man. The former is in antithesis with base in the preceding question. For the effect, see Emph., Sect. II. 8. 10th Sentence. (See Sth.) 11th Sentence. (See 9th.) 1 2th Sentence. (Sth and 1 0th.) 13th Sentence. A simple declarative sentence. For general delivery, see Rule L Emphasis on reply, and coincides with perfect close. 14th Sentence. This is a fragmentary simple definite interrogative exclamation. For the general delivery, see Rule II. It receives emphasis as if the sentence was complete. (See Emph., Sec. II. 7.) 15th Sentence. A simple declarative. Emphasis on none contradictory, and converting the lower sweep into falling slide. (See Emph., Sec. II. vi.) 16th Sentence. A compound declarative single compact of the first form : correlative words more — than. Emphasis on Ceesar and Brutus antithetic : exhausting the lower sweep on the former, and coinciding on the latter with perfect close. l'Tth Sentence. A compound declarative perfect loose, in two parts: the first a simple declarative, and the second a double compact with the first part only, having two members, expressed. (See Classif, Sect. II. Class I. Double Compact, definition and examples, 3.) For the general de- liver}", see Rule IX. For the proper pauses, see Punct., Comma, and Classif. as above. Em- phatic woids capital, extenuated-, enforced, death. Emphasis on capital and death coincides with partial and perfect close: (see Emph., Sect. II. 4:) on extenuated, it produces full development: (see Emph*, Sect. II. 1 :) on enforced., the lower sweep confined to the word ; because a pause may be made after it, for the reason that the sentence may be transposed at that point. (See Punctuation, Comma, Omissions, 5.) 18th Sentence. A semi-interrogative. The declarative portion is perfect loose, in two parts : properly separ- ated by the semicolon, because who, the connective, is expressed. Emphasis on Antony, deatfu, dying-, commonwealth. On all of them except death, it coincides with partial close : on death the lower sweep is exhausted on the w r ord. The interrogative portion is a simple indefinite interrogative, with emphasis on which and not. 19th Sentence. A compound declarative perfect loose in two parts, separated by the colon, because namely is understood. The first part a simple declarative ; the second, a mixed sentence combining two compacts. Emphasis an depart and death coincides with partial and perfect close; on lover it produces full development: on myself, the lower sweep limited to the word. 316 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. SEC. IV. THE PROPER LIMITS OF BENEVOLENCE. 1 Kind and amiable people ! your benevolence is most lovely in its display, but oh ! it is perishable in its consequences. Does it never occur to you that in a few years this favorite will die ; 2 and that he will go to the place where neither cold nor hunger will reach him ; but that a mighty interest remains, of which both of us may know the certainty, though neither you nor I can calculate the extent ? Your benevolence is too short : it 3 does not shoot far enough ahead : it is like regaling a child with a sweetmeat or a toy, and then abandoning the happy unre- flecting infant to exposure. You make the poor old man happy 4 with your crumbs and your fragments, but he is an infant on the mighty range of duration ; and will you leave the soul, which has the infinity to go through, to its chance ? How comes it that the grave should throw so impenetrable a shroud over 5 the realities of eternity ? how comes it that heaven, and hell, and judgment, should be treated as so many nonentities ; and that there should be as little real and operative sympathy felt for the soul which lives forever, as for the body after it is dead, or for the dust into which it moulders ? Eternity is longer than time ; the arithmetic, my brethren, is all on one side upon this 6 question ; and the wisdom which calculates, and guides itself by calculation, gives its weighty and respectable support to what may be called the benevolence of faith. — Chalmers. Sentence 1st. — A single compact, 2d form : correlatives indeed— but : the first part preceded by a compellative, and the last including a spontaneous excl. Sentence 2d.— lmperf. loose de- finite interrog. in three parts : but a poor substitute for and in the third pail. Sent. 3d— Comp. decl. perf. loose in three parts. Sent. Ath— Semi-interrog : declar. portion single compact, 2d form : indeed — but : the interrog. definite close : the declar. and interrog. have a loose con- nection. Sent. 5th.— Perfect loose indef. interrog. : the second part, imperi*. loose. Sent. GtA.~ Perf. loose declar. in three parts. SEC. V. A TWOFOLD PEACE. 1 There is a twofold peace. 2 The first is negative. 3 It is relief from disquiet and corroding care : it is repose after con- 4 flict and storms. But there is another and a higher peace, to which this is but the prelude: "a peace of God which passeth understanding," and properly called " the kingdom of God within 5 us." This state is any thing but negative. It is the highest and most strenuous action of the soul ; but an entirely harmonious 6 action, in which all our powers and affections are blended in a beautiful proportion, and sustain and perfect one another. It is 7 more than silence after storms ; it is as the concord of all melo- EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 317 dious sounds. Has the reader never known a season, -when, in the fullest flow of thought and feeling, in the universal action 8 of the soul, an inward calm, profound as midnight silence, yet bright as the still summer noon, full of joy, but unbroken by one throb of tumultuous passion, has breathed through his spirit, and given him a glimpse and presage of the serenity of a 9 happier world ? Of this character is the peace of religion. It is a conscious harmony with God and the creation : an alliance 10 of love with all beings: a sympathy with all that is pure and happy : a surrender of every separate will and interest : a par- ticipation of the spirit and life of the universe : an entire con- 11 cord of purpose with its Infinite Original. This is peace, and the true happiness of man; and we think that human na- 12 ture has never lost sight of this its great end. It has always sighed for a repose, in which energy of thought and will might be tempered with an all-pervading tranquillity. We 13 seem to discover aspirations after this good, a dim consciousness of it, in all ages of the world. We think we see it in those 14 systems of Oriental and Grecian philosophy, which proposed as the consummation of present virtue a release from all disquiet, and an intimate union and harmony with the divine mind. We even think, that we trace this consciousness, this aspiration, in 15 the works of ancient art which time has spared uc ; in which the sculptor, aiming to embody his deepest thoughts of human perfection, has joined with the fulness of life and strength, a repose, which breathes into the spectator an admiration as calm 16 as it is exalted. Man, we believe, never loses the sentiment of his true good. There are yearnings, sighings, which he does not himself comprehend ; which break forth alike in his pros- perous and adverse seasons ; which betray a deep, indestructible 17 faith in a good he has not found ; and which, in proportion as they grow distinct, rise to God, and concentrate the soul on him, as at once his life and rest : the fountain at once of energy and repose. Channing. Sent. 1st, 2d, 5th.— Simple declar. Sent. 3d, 4th, 6th.— Comp. declar. perf. loose. Sent. 1th. — Single compact, 3d form : therefore— for. Sent. 8th. — Compound def. interrog. mixed sentence : then — when, though — ytt, indeed — but, as — so, happiei — than. Sent. 9th. — Simple declar. trans- posed. Sent, liith. — Compound decl. imperf. loose in six parts. Sent. 11th. — Peri', loose decl. Se?U 12th. — Decl. close. Sent. 13th. — The same Sent. 14th. — Mixed (close and single com- fact so — as) decl. Sent. 15th. — Decl. perf. loose in two parts. Sent. 16th. — Close decl. Sent. 7th. — Imperf. loose decl. : the last part imperf. loose. SEC. VI. THE VALUE OF PUBLIC FAITH. 1 To expatiate on the value of public faith may pass with some men for declamation : to such men I have nothing to say. To 27* 318 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. others, I will urge, can any circumstance mark upon a people 2 more turpitude and debasement ? can any thing tend more to make men think themselves mean ; or to degrade to a lower point their estimation of virtue, and their standard of action ? It would not merely demoralize mankind ; it tends to break 3 all the ligaments of society; to dissolve that mysterious charm which attracts individuals to the nation ; and to inspire in its stead a repulsive sense of shame and disgust. 4 What is patriotism ? Is it a narrow affection for the spot 5 where a man was born ? are the very clods where we tread entitled to this ardent preference because they are greener ? 6 No, sir; this is not the character of the virtue, and it soars higher for its object : it is an extended self-love : mingling with all the enjoyments of life, and twisting itself with the minutest 7 filaments of the heart. It is thus we obey the laws of society, because they are the laws of virtue. In their authority we see, 8 not the array of force and terror, but the venerable image of 9 our country's honor. Every good citizen makes that honor his own, and cherishes it, not only as precious, but as sacred. He 10 is willing to risk his life in its defence, and is conscious that he gains protection while he gives it ; for what rights of a citizen will be deemed inviolable when a state renounces the principles 11 that constitute their security ? Or, if his life should not be in- vaded, what would its enjoyments be in a country, odious in the eye of strangers and dishonored in his own? Could he 12 look with affection and veneration to such a country as his 13 parent? The sense of having one would die within him: he would blush for his patriotism, if he retained any ; and justly, 14 for it would be a vice. He would be a banished man in his native land. Ames. Sent. 2d. — Semi-interrog. : interrog. portion def. interrog. perf. loose. Sent. 3d. — Single compact, 3d form : therefore— fur : the second part imperf. loose, or close. Sent. 5th. — Def. interrog. perf. loose. Sent. 6th. — JVu is followed, by its equivalent: and after virtue clearly used tor for. The sentence is then a double compact : tirst and second pails expressed : two members in the first part: the second part perfect loose. Sent. 1th. — Single coinp. 2d form : therefore — because. Sent. '6th. — Mixed : part simple dec!. ; part double compact, first and third part expressed. Sent. l Jth. — Mixed: close, and three single compacts: indeed — but, so — as, no — as. Sent. 10th. — Semi-interrog. : loose connection between decl. and interrog. portion ; the latter indef. interrog. single compact : then — when. SEC. VII. PERPETUITY OF THE UNION. I have not allowed myself, sir, to look beyond the union, to see what might lie hidden in the dark recess behind ; I have not coolly weighed the chances of preserving liberty, when the 1 bonds that unite us together shall be broken asunder; I have not accustomed myself to hang over the precipice of disunion, EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 319 to see whether, with my short sight, I can fathom the depth of the abyss below; nor could I regard him as a safe counsellor in the affairs of this government, whose thoughts should be mainly bent on considering, not how the union should be best preserved, but how tolerable might be the condition of the people when it shall be broken up and destroyed. 2 While the union lasts, we have high, exciting, gratifying 3 prospects spread out before us, for us and our children. Be- yond that I seek not to penetrate the veil. God grant that, in 4 my day at least, that curtain may not rise : God grant, that on my vision never may be opened what lies behind. When my eyes^ shall be turned to behold, for the last time, the sun in heaven, may I not see him shining on the broken and dishonored fragments of a once glorious union ; on states dissevered, dis- cordant, belligerent ; on a land rent with civil feuds, or drenched, 5 it may be, in fraternal blood ! let their last feeble and lingering glance, rather, behold the gorgeous ensign of the republic, now known and honored throughout the earth, still full high ad- vanced : its arms and trophies streaming in their original lustre: not a stripe erased or polluted, nor a single star obscured : bear- ing for its motto, no such miserable interrogatory as, What is all this worth? nor those other words of delusion and folly, liberty first, and union afterwards ; but everywhere, spread all over in characters of living light, blazing on all its ample folds as they float over the sea and over the land, and in every wind under the whole heavens, that other sentiment dear to every true American heart : liberty and union ; now and forever ; one and inseparable ! Sent. 1st.— Double compact : first part only, comprising four members, expressed. Sent, id. — Decl. close. Sent. '3d. — Simple decl. transposed. Sent. 4th. — Decl. loose in two parts. Sent. 5th. Mixed sent. (See Classif. Mixed Sent., where this sent, will be found.; SEC. Vffl. VIRTUE AND PD3TY ARE CONFORMITY TO NATURE. 1 I find myself existing upon a little spot, surrounded every way 2 by an immense unknown expansion. Where am I ? what sort of place do I inhabit ? Is it exactly accommodated, in every 3 instance, to my convenience ? is there no excess of cold, none of heat, to offend me ? am I never annoyed by animals either of my own kind, or a difFerent ? is every thing subservient to me, 4 as though I had ordered all myself ? No ; nothing like it ; the 5 farthest from it possible. The world appears not then origi- 6 nally made for the private convenience of me alone ? It does not. 7 But is it not possible so to accommodate it, by my own particu- 8 lar industry ? If to accommodate man and beast, heaven and *20 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 9 earth, if this he beyond me, it is not possible. What conse- 10 quence then follows ? Can there be any other than this : if I seek an interest of my own detached from that of others, I seek an interest which is chimerical, and can have no existence? How 12 then must I determine ? 11 Have I no interest at all ? -If I 13 have not, I am a fool for staying here : 'tis a smoky house ; and 14 the sooner out of it the better. But why no interest? Can I 15 be contented with none, but one separate and detached? is a social interest joined with others such an absurdity as not to be 1G admitted? The bee, the beaver, and the tribes of herding ani- mals, are enough to convince me that the thing is, somewhere at 17 least, possible. How then am I assured, that it is not equally 18 true of man? Admit it, and what follows? 19 If so, then honor and justice are my interest : then the whole train of moral virtues are my interest ; without some portion of which, not even thieves can maintain society. 20 But farther still: I stop not here; I pursue this social inter- 21 est as far as I can trace my several relations. I pass from my own flock, my own neighborhood, my own nation, to the whole 22 race of mankind, as dispersed throughout the earth. Am I not related to them all by the mutual aids of commerce : by the general intercourse of arts and letters : by that common nature, of which we all participate ? 23 Again : I must have food and clothing. 24 Without a 25 proper genial warmth, I must instantly perish. Am I not re- lated in this view to the very earth itself : to the distant sun from whose beams I derive vigor : to that stupendous course and order of the infinite host of heaven, by which the times and 26 seasons ever uniformly pass on? Were this order once con- founded, I could not probably survive a moment : so absolutely do I depend on this common welfare. 27 What then have I to do but to enlarge virtue into piety ? 28 Not only honor and justice, and what I owe to man i§ my inter- est, but gratitude also ; acquiescence ; resignation ; adoration ; and all I owe to this great polity, and its greater Governor, our common parent. 29 But if all these moral and divine habits be my interest, I need not, surely, seek for a better ; I have an interest compatible with the spot on which I live : I have an interest which may exist, without altering the plan of Providence ; without mending or marring the general order of events. I can hear whatever hap- 30 pens with manlike magnanimity, can be contented and fully happy in the good w T hich I possess, and can pass through this turbid, this fickle, this fleeting period, without bewailings or envyings or murmurings or complaints. — Harris. EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 321 Sent, lit.— Close Decl. : " which is" understood before surrounded. SmL 3d.— Perf. loose indef'. interrog. Sent. 3d.— Perf. loose def. interrog. S-nt. 4th.— Double compact: first and third pail expressed : first part has two members : semicolon between the parts, because both correlatives are understood. (Sec Sing-. Compact, Punctuation.) Sent. 5th. — Indirect interrog. Sent. 8th.— Sijude compact, 2d form : two members in the first part. Sent. lUi/t.— Compound perf. loose del. interrog. Sent. 13th.— Decl. loose with three parts. Sent, l&th.— Semi-inter- rog. : connection between the decl. and interrog. compact, 3d form, 3d var. Sent. 19th.— Decl loose with two parts : 1st part imperf. loose or sing, compact. Sent. 20th. — The same, with a double compact in the second part. Sent. 22d and 25th.— Compound def. interrog. imperfect loose. Sent. 2Uth. — Mixed : if-then, therefore — because : the last part of the second compact beginning with because, perf. loose in two parts : last, imperf. loose. SEC, IX. TRUTH INVINCIBLE IF LEFT TO GRAPPLE WITH FALSEHOOD ON EQUAL TERMS. 1 Though all the "winds of doctrine were let loose to play upon the earth, so Truth be in the field, we do injuriously, by licens- 2 ing and prohibiting, to doubt her strength. Let her and False- hood grapple : who ever knew Truth put to the worse in a free and open encounter ? who knows not that Truth is strong, next 3 to the Almighty? She needs no policies, nor stratagems, nor licensings, to make her victorious ; those are the shifts and de- fences that error uses against her power. Give her but room, 4 and do not bind her when she sleeps ; for then she speaks not true, but then rather she turns herself into all shapes, except her own, and perhaps tunes her voice according to the time, until she be adjured into her own likeness. — Milton. Sent. 1st. — Mixed sent, thovgh — yet, if— then : so stands for if. Sent. 2d. — Semi-interrog. : loose connection between decl. and interrog. : the interrog. perf. loose. Sent. 3d.— Double compact, 1st and 2d part expressed. Sent. 4th.— Perf. loose. SEC. X. THE RESULTS OF FREE DISCUSSION. When the cheerfulness of the people is so sprightly up, as that it hath not only wherewithal to guard well its own freedom and safety, but to spare and to bestow upon the solidest and sub- 1 limest points of controversy, and new invention ; it betokens us not degenerated, nor drooping to a fatal decay, but casting off the old and wrinkled skin of corruption, to outlive these pangs, and wax young again : entering the glorious ways of truth and virtue ; destined to become great and honorable in these latter ages. Methinks I see, in my mind, a noble and puissant nation 2 rousing herself, like a strong man after sleep, and shaking her invincible locks : methinks I see her as an eagle mewing her mighty youth, and kindling her endazzled eyes at the full mid- day beam ; purging and unsealing her long-abused sight, at the fountain itself of heavenly radiance, while the whole noise 322 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. of timorous flocking birds, with tiiose also that love the twilight, flutter about, amazed at what she means, and would prognosti- cate a year of sects and schisms. — Milton. Sent. 1st.— Mixed ; as a whole single compact, 2d form : when— then : the first part of this contains two other compacts : so — as and indeed — but : the second, a double compact: 1st and 3d part expressed : of which again the third pjirt, is loose. Sent. 2d. — Decl. perf. loose in two parts : the first ending at locks ; the second, imperf. loose. SEC. XI. THE INFLUENCE OF ELEGANT LITERATURE. There also are the eloquence, the literature, the poetry of all times and tongues ; those glorious efforts of genius that rule, 1 with a never-dying sway, over our sympathies and affections : commanding our smiles and tears; kindling the imagination; warming the heart ; filling the fancy with beauty ; and awing the soul with the sublime, the terrible, the powerful, the infinite. Ye grand inventions of ancient bards ! ye gay creations of 2 modern fancy ! ye bright visions ! ye fervid and impassioned thoughts ! serve ye all for no better purpose than the pastime of an idle hour? 3 Ah ! not so : not so. It is yours to stir to the bottom the dull and stagnant soul: ye can carry man out of himself and 4 make him feel his kindred with his whole race : ye can teach him to look beyond external and physical nature for enjoyment and for power ; ye rouse him from the deep lethargy of sense, raise him above " the worthless thing we are," and reveal to him his capacity for purer purposes, and a nobler state of being. Verplanck. Sentence 1st. — Perf. loose decl. in two parts t the first ending with affections, imperf. loose ; the second, loose or close as it may be treated. Sentence 2d. — Semi-interrogative : first part com- pound compellative exclamatory ; and the second, compound definite compact. The two parts relatively form a close sentence. The exclamation points represent commas. Sentence 3d. — A compound declarative perfect loose, preceded by the spontaneous exclamation ah ! which is here merely the key-note of the sentence. Sentence 4.th. — Perf. loose decl. : together with sent. 3d, it may form a double compact : 1st and 2d parts expressed. In which case, there should of course be semicolons after the two sos instead of the colon and period, and each so will be delivered with the bend. SEC. XII. A VEHEMENT ATTACK ON THE ALIEN AND SEDITION LAW. But, as if this were not enough, the unfortunate victims of 1 this law are told, in the next place, that, if they can convince the President that his suspicions are unfounded, he may, if he pleases, give them a license to stay. But how can they remove 2 his suspicions, when they know not on what act they were founded? how take proof to convince" him, when he is not 3 bound to furnish that on which he proceeds ? Miserable mockery of justice ! Appoint an arbitrary judge, armed with EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 323 4 legislative and executive powers added to his own ; let him con- demn the unheard, the unaccused object of his suspicions ; and then, to cover the injustice of the scene, gravely tell him, "You ought not to complain ; you need only disprove facts you never heard ; remove suspicions that have never been communicated to you ; it will be easy to convince your judge, whom you shall not approach, that he is tyrannical and unjust ; and when you have done this, we give him the power, he had before, to pardon you, if he pleases I*' JSdw. Livingston. Sentence 1st. — Mixed sent. u But so — as, then — if— then — if*" Sentence 3d, — Simple decl. ex- clam. : fragmentary. Sentence ±th. — As a whole, a mixed sentence : a compound declarative single compact, third form: correlative words, when — then, in the portion preceding the quota- tion : then begins another single compact with correlative words, therefore — because ; which introduces a third, with correlative words, as — so : the whole linked thus : " when you appoint — then gravely tell him, therefore you ought not, because, as you need— so it will be easy," &c The second part of this last compact is perfect loose, and concludes with a Bingle compact: correlative words, when— then. SEC. Xm. EVILS OF THE OLD CONFEDERATION. 1 Need I call to your remembrance the contrasted scenes of which we have been witnesses ? On the glorious conclusion of 2 our conflict with Britain, what high expectations were formed concerning us, by others ! what high expectations did we form 3 concerning ourselves ! Have those expectations been realized ? 4 No. 5 What has been the cause ? 6 Did our citizens lose 7 their perseverance and magnanimity ? No. Did they become 8 insensible of resentment and indignation at any high-handed attempt that might have been made to injure or enslave them ? 9 No. 10 What then has been the cause ? 11 The truth is, we dreaded danger only on one side : this we manfully repelled. But on another side, danger, not less formidable, but more 12 insidious, stole in upon us; and our unsuspicious tempers were not sufficiently attentive either to its approach or to its operations. 13 Those, whom foreign strength could not overpower, have well nigh become the victims of internal anarchy. 14 If we become a little more particular, we shall find that the foregoing representation is by no means exaggerated. When 15 we had baffled all the menaces of foreign power, we neg- lected to establish among ourselves a government that could 16 ensure domestic vigor and stability. What was the conse- lVquence? The commencement of peace was the commence- ment of every disgrace and distress that could befall a people in a peaceful state. Devoid of national power, we could 18 not prohibit the extravagance of our importations, nor could we derive a revenue from their excess. Devoid of national im- 19 portance, we could not procure for our exports a tolerable sale at foreign markets. Devoid of national credit, we saw our 324 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 20 securities melt in the hands of the holders, like snow before the sun. Devoid of national dignity, we could not, in some in- 21 stances, perform our treaties on our part ; and, in other instances, we could neither obtain nor compel the performance of them on 22 the part of others. Devoid of national energy, we could not carry into execution our own resolutions, decisions, or laws. 23 Shall I become more particular still? 24 The tedious detail would disgust me ; nor is it now necessary. Wihon. Sentences 4th,7th, 9iA. — JVo maybe treated either as a simple decl. sentence, or a compound decl. double compact, with the third proposition understood, thus: No, but the reverse. If treated as a simp, decl., it will be delivered with perfect close ; but if as a double compact, with circumflex, just as if the third proposition was expressed. Sentences 19-22. — Each of these is a single compact of the third form ; or the whole may bo treated as a comp. decl. perf. loose : perhaps it should be. SEC. XIV. THE ADVOCATES OF CHARLES I. PROPERLY CHASTISED. The advocates of Charles, like the advocates of other male- 1 factors, against whom overwhelming evidence is produced, gen- erally decline all controversy about the facts, and content them- 2 selves with calling testimony to character. He had so many private virtues ! and had James II. no private virtues ? was even Oliver Cromwell, his bitterest enemies themselves being judges, 3 destitute of private virtues ? And what, after all, are the vir- tues ascribed to Charles ? A religious zeal, not more sincere 4 than that of his son, and fully as weak and narrow-minded, and a few of the ordinary household decencies, which half the tomb- 5 stones in England claim for those who lie beneath them. A 6 good father ! a good husband ! Ample apologies, indeed, for fifteen years of persecution, tyranny, and falsehood ! *i We charge him with having broken his coronation-oath, and we are told that he kept his marriage-vow ! We accuse him of 8 having given up his people to the merciless inflictions of the most hot-headed and hard-hearted of prelates, and the defence is, that he took his little son on hislmee and kissed him ! We censure 9 him for having violated the articles of the Petition of Right, after having, for good and valuable considerations, promised to observe them, and we are informed that he was accustomed to hear prayers at six o'clock in the morning ! It is to such con- A siderations as these, together with his Vandyke dress, his hand- some face, and his peaked beard, that he owes, we verily believe, most of his popularity with the present generation. For ourselves, we own that we do not understand the common 11 phrase, " a good man, but a bad king ;" we can as easily conceive a good man and an unnatural father; or a good man and a treacherous friend. We cannot, in estimating the character of EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 325 12 an individual, leave out of our consideration his conduct in the most important of all human relations ; and if, in that relation, we find him to have been selfish, cruel, and deceitful, we shall take the liberty to call him a bad man, in spite of all his tem- perance at table, and all his regularity at chapel. Macaulay. Sentence 2d. — A semi-interrog., with a perf. loose def. interrog. in one part, and a fragmen- tary compound close decl. excl. in the other. The complement of the latter supplied, it would probably read thus: "It is said that he had," &c. Sentences 1th, 8th and 9th, are respectively single compact declar. exclam., of the third form, third var. K If we charge, &c, then,'''' &c, "If we accuse, &c, then the defence," &c. "If we censure &c, then we are informed," &c. Sentence 11th. — A double compact decl., with the first and second proposition expressed: i. e., the negative and the reason for it. SEC. XV. IF GOD BE FOR YOU, FEAR NOTHING. 1 What shall we then say to these things ? 2 If God be for us, 3 who can be against us? He that spared not his own son, — how ! 4 shall he not with him, also freely give us all things ! Who shall 5 lay any thing to the charge of God's elect ? God that justifieth ! 6 Who is he that condemneth ? Christ that died, yea rather, that 7 is risen again, who is even at the right hand of God : who also 8 maketh intercession for us ! Who shall separate us from the 9 love of Christ ? Tribulation, or distress, or persecution, or famine, or nakedness, or peril, or sword, as it is written, For thy sake we are killed all the day long : we are accounted as sheep for the slaughter ! Nay, in all these things we are more than conquerors, through him that loved us ; for I am persuaded 10 that neither death, nor life ; nor angels, nor principalities, nor powers ; nor things present, nor things to come ; nor height, nor depth ; nor any other creature, shall be able to separate us from the love of God, which is in Christ Jesus our Lord. Sentence 3d.— This sentence began with the design of being a comp. close declarative ; but the author at son breaks that construction and converts the remainder into a definite interrog. excl. Sentences 5th, 1th, 9th, are fragmentary definite interrog. excl. Sentence 10th. — Nay is here equivalent to " these shall not separate us, &c." : for making it, with the continuation, the first and second proposition of "a double compact declarative. SEC. XVI. IMPORTANT RESULTS FROM THE SUFFERINGS OF THE PILGRIMS. From the dark portals of the star-chamber, and in the stern 1 text of the acts of uniformity, the pilgrims received a commis- sion more efficient than any that ever bore the royal seal. Their banishment to Holland was fortunate : the decline of their little company in the strange land was fortunate : the difficulties 2 which they experienced in getting the royal consent to banish themselves to this wilderness were fortunate : all the tears and heart-breakings of that memorable parting at Delfthaven, had 28 32G EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. the happiest influence on the rising destinies of New England. These rough touches of fortune brushed off the light, uncertain, selfish spirits : they made it a grave, solemn, self-denying expe- dition, and required of those who engaged in it to be so too : 3 they cast a broad shadow of thought and seriousness over the cause ; and if this sometimes deepened into melancholy and bitterness, can we find no apology for such a human weak- ness ? Their trials of wandering and exile, of the ocean, the winter, 4 the wilderness and the savage foe, were the final assurances of success. It was these that put far away from our fathers' 5 cause, all patrician softness : all hereditary claims to pre-emi- nence. No effeminate nobility crowded into the dark and austere ranks of the pilgrims ; no Carr nor Villiers would lead on the ill-provided band of the despised Puritans ; no well- endowed clergy were on the alert to quit their cathedrals, and set up a pompous hierarchy in the frozen wilderness ; no 6 craving governors were anxious to be sent over to our cheerless El Dorados of ice and of snow ; no ; they could not say they had encouraged, patronized, or helped the pilgrims ; their own cares, their own labors, their own counsels, their own blood contrived all, achieved all, bore all, sealed all. They could not afterwards fairly pretend to reap where they had not strewn ; and as our fathers reared this broad and solid fabric with pains 1 and watchfulness, unaided, barely tolerated, it did not fall when the favor, which had always been withholden, was changed in- to wrath: when the arm which had never supported, was raised to destroy. Methinks I see it now : that one solitary, adventurous vessel, 8 the Mayflower of a forlorn hope, freighted with the prospects of a future state, and bound across the unknown sea. I behold it 9 pursuing, with a thousand misgivings, the uncertain, tedious voyage. Suns rise and set, and weeks and months pass, and 10 winter surprises them on the deep, but brings them not the sight of the wished-for shore. I see them now, scantily sup- plied with provisions, crowded almost to suffocation in their 1 1 ill-stored prison, delayed by calms, pursuing a circuitous route ; and now driven in fury, before the raging tempest, on the high and giddy waves. The awful voice of the storm howls through the rigging : the laboring masts seem straining from their base : 12 the dismal sound of the pumps is heard : the ship leaps, as it were, madly from billow to billow : the ocean breaks and settles with ingulfing floods over the floating deck, and beats with deadening, shivering weight, against the staggered vessel. I see them, escaped from these perils, pursuing their all but des- EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 327 perate undertaking, and landed at last, after a five months' pas- 13 sage, on the ice-clad rocks of Plymouth : weak and weary from the voyage, poorly armed, scantily provisioned : depending on the charity of their ship-master for a draught of beer on board ; drinking nothing but water on shore, without shelter, without means, surrounded by hostile tribes. Shut now the volume of history, and tell me, on any princi- 14 pie of human probability, what shall be the fate of this handful of adventurers. Tell me, man of military science ! in how ] 5 many months were they all swept off by the thirty savage tribes, enumerated within the early limits of New England? Tell me, politician ! how long did the shadow of a colony, on , 10 which your conventions and treaties had not smiled, languish on the distant coast ? Student of history ! compare for me the 17 baffled projects, the deserted settlements, the abandoned adven- tures of other times, and find the parallel of this. Was it the winter's storm, beating upon the houseless heads of women and children, was it hard labor and spare meals, was it disease, was it the tomahawk,. was it the deep malady of a blighted hope, a 18 ruined enterprise and a broken heart, aching in its last moments at the recollection of the loved and left, beyond the sea, was it some, or all of these united, that hurried this forsaken company to their melancholy fate ? And is it possible that neither of these causes, that not all combined, were able to blast this bud of hope ? is it possible, that from a beginning so feeble, so frail, 19 so worthy, not so much of admiration as of pity, there has gone forth a progress so steady, a growth so wonderful, an expan- sion so ample, a reality so important, a promise, yet to be ful- filled, so glorious ? . JEverett. Sentence 6th. — A compound declarative double compact, with the first proposition, consist- ing of a series of members, and the third, comprising a compound declarative perfect loose. JVo is here somewhat singular in having its equivalent in the member which follows, while it is itself the equivalent of all that precede. (See Classify Double Compact, 7, General JVote, and Rule VIII. 3.) Sentence 13th. — The third member should be treated as a single compact, third form, and of course delivered with the bend at board. Sentences 15th, 16th. — Semi- interrogative. The two parts of each relatively form a loose sentence. Sentence lQth. — Ob- serve the delivery of the successive members in the first part of this interrogative. (See Rule X.) SEC. XVn. SORROW FOR THE DEAD. 1 Sorrow for the dead is the only sorrow from which we refuse to be divorced. Every other wound we seek to heal ; every 2 other affliction to forget ; but this wound we consider it a duty to keep open : this affliction we cherish and brood over in soli- tude. Where is the mother that would willingly forget the infant that perished like a blossom from her arms, though every recollection is a pang ? where is the child that would willingly 328 EXERCISE3 ON PARAGRAPHS. forget the most tender of parents, though to remember be but 3 to lament ? who, even in the hour of agony, would forget the friend over whom he mourns ? who, even when the tomb is closing upon the remains of her he most loved, when he feels his heart, as it were, crushed in the closing of its portal, would accept consolation that was to be bought by forgetfulness ? 4 No ; the love which survives the tomb is one of the noblest attributes of the soul. If it has its woes, it has likewise its de- lights ; and when the overwhelming burst of grief is calmed 5 into the gentle tear of recollection, when the sudden anguish and the convulsive agony over the present ruins of all that we most loved, is softened away into pensive meditation on all that it was in the days of its loveliness, who would root out such a sorrow from the heart ? Though it may sometimes throw a 6 passing cloud even over the bright hour of gayety, or spread a deeper sadness over the hour of gloom, yet who would exchange it even for the song of pleasure, or the burst of revelry ? No ; ' 1 there is a voice from the tomb sweeter than song : there is a recollection of the dead to which we turn even from the charms 8 of the living. Oh, the grave ! the grave ! 9 It buries every error : covers every defect : extinguishes every resentment. 10 From its peaceful bosom spring none but fond regrets and tender recollections. Who can look down upon the grave even 11 of an enemy, and not feel a compunctious throb, that ever he should have warred with the poor handful of earth that lies mouldering before him ! 12 But the grave of those we loved — what a place for medita- tion ! There it is that we call up in, long review the whole history of virtue and gentleness, and the thousand endearments lavished upon us almost unheeded in the daily intercourse of intimacy : there it is that we dwell upon the tenderness, the solemn, awful tenderness of the parting scene ; the bed of death, 13 with all its stifled griefs; its noiseless attendance; its mute, watchful assiduities ; the last testimonies of expiring love ; the feeble, fluttering, thrilling, (Oh ! how thrilling !) pressure of the hand ; the last fond look of the glazing eye, turning upon us even from the threshold of existence ; the faint, faltering ac- cents struggling in death to give one more assurance of affection ! 14 Aye, go to the grave of buried love, and meditate! There 15 settle the account with thy conscience for every past benefit unrequited, every past endearment unregarded, of that being, who can never, never, never return to be soothed by thy con- trition ! If thou art a child, and hast ever added a sorrow to the soul, or a furrow to the silvered brow of an affectionate parent ; if EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 329 thou art a husband, and hast ever caused the fond bosom that ventured its whole happiness in thy arms, to doubt one moment of thy kindness or thy truth ; if thou art a friend, and hast ever wronged, in thought, word, or deed, the spirit that gener- ously confided in thee ; if thou art a lover, and hast ever given 16 one unmerited pang to that true heart that now lies cold and still beneath thy feet ; then be sure that every unkind look, every ungracious word, every ungentle action, will come throng- ing back upon thy memory, and knocking dolefully at thy soul : then be sure that thou wilt lie down sorrowing and repentant on the grave, and utter the unheard groan, and pour the un- availing tear : more deep, more bitter, because unheard and unavailing. Then weave thy chaplet of flowers, and strew the beauties of nature about the grave ; console thy broken spirit, if thou canst, 17 with these tender, yet futile tributes of regret ; but take warning by the bitterness of this thy contrite affliction over the dead, and be more faithful and affectionate in the discharge of thy duties to the living. Irving. Sentence 8th. — Compound fragmentary perf. loose indef. interrog. exclam. : Oh ! what a place is the grave ! what a place is the grave ! SEC. XVm. A POLITICAL PAUSE. 1 " But we must pause !" says the honorable gentleman. What ! 2 must the bowels of Great Britain be torn out, her best blood spilt, her treasure wasted, that you may make an experiment ? 3 Put yourselves, oh ! that you would put yourselves, on the field of battle, and learn to judge of the sort of horrors that you excite. In former wars, a man might, at least, have some feeling, some interest, that served to balance in his mind the 4 impressions which a scene of carnage and of death must inflict ; but if a man were present now at the field of slaughter, and were to inquire for wmat they were fighting, " Fighting !" would be the answer ; " they are not fighting ; they are pausing." 5 Why is that man expiring ? why is that other writhing with agony ? what means this implacable fury ? The answer must 6 be, "You are quite wrong, sir: you deceive yourself: they are not fighting ; do not disturb them ; they are merely pausing ! V This man is not expiring with agony ; that man is not dead ; he is only pausing ! Lord help you, sir : they are not angry with 8 one another ; they have now no cause of quarrel ; but their country thinks there should be a pause ! All that you see, sir, 9 is nothing like fighting ; there is no harm, nor cruelty, nor 28* 330 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. bloodshed in it, whatever; it is nothing more than a political pause ! It is merely to try an experiment, to see whether 10 Bonaparte will not behave himself better than heretofore ; and in the mean time we have agreed to a pause, in pure friend- ship r 11 And is this the way, sir, that you are to show yourselves the advocates of order ? You take up a system calculated to un- civilize the world, to destroy order, to trample on religion, to 12 stifle in the heart, not merely the generosity of noble sentiment, but the affections of social life ; and in the prosecution of this system, you spread terror and devastation all around you. Fox. The double compacts in this piece deserve particular attention. The twelfth sentence is a single compact declarative, thud form. SEC. XIX. A PART OF EMMETTS DEFENCE. 1 I am charged with being an emissary of France ! 2 An emis- 3 sary of France ! And for what end ? 4 It is alleged that I 5 wished to sell the independence of my country ! And for what 6 end ? Was this the object of my ambition ? and is this the mode by which a tribunal of justice reconciles contradictions ? 1 No ; I am no emissary ; and my ambition was to hold a place among the deliverers of my country : not in power, nor in profit, 8 but in the glory of the achievement ! Sell my country's inde- 9 pendence to France ! And for what ? 10 Was it for a change of 1 1 masters ? No, but for ambition ! 0, my country, was it personal 12 ambition that could influence me ? had it been the soul of my actions, could I not by my education and fortune, by the rank and consideration of my family, have placed myself among the 13 proudest of my oppressors ? My country was my idol ; to it I sacrificed every selfish, every endearing sentiment ; and for it I now offer up my life. 14 God ! — No, my lord ! I acted as an Irishman, determined on delivering my country from the yoke of a foreign and unrelent- 15 ing tyranny, and from the more galling yoke of a domestic faction, which is its joint partner and perpetrator in the parri- cide, for the ignominy of existing with an exterior of splendor 16 and of conscious depravity. It was the wish of my heart to extricate my country from this doubly-riveted despotism : I wished to place her independence beyond the reach of any power on earth : I wished to exalt her to that proud station in the world. — Emmett. Sentence 2d.— A fragmentary simple decl. exclam., like the preceding, but delivered with increased aurprise and contempt : it may be treated as a def. interrog. excl. and delivered with EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 331 the rising slide : in this case, however, siirprise will be the emotion expressed : not contempt ; which 1 think was the one felt. Sent. 8th. — A simple def. interrog. exclam. Sent. lith. — This begins with a compellative as if a prayer was intended, but breaks off, and proceeds with a double compact. SEC. XX. THE DEATH OF ALTAMONT. 1 The sad evening before the death of this noble youth, I was 2 with him. No one was there but his physician, and an intimate 3 friend, whom he loved and whom he had ruined. At my com- 4 ing in, he said, You and the physician are come too late. I 5 have neither life nor hope. You both aim at miracles : you would raise the dead. 6 Heaven, I said, is merciful — 7 Or I could not have been thus guilty. 8 What has it done 9 to bless and to save me ! I have been too strong for Omnipo- 10 tence ! I plucked down ruin ! 11 I said, the blessed Redeemer — 12 Hold ! hold ! you wound me ! 13 This is the rock on which I split : I denied his name. 14 Refusing to hear any thing from me, or take any thing from the physician, he lay silent, as far as sudden darts of pain would 15 permit, till the clock struck. Then with vehemence — Oh, time ! time ! it is fit thou shouldst thus strike thy murderer to the 16 heart. How art thou fled forever ! 17 A month ! 18 Oh, for 19 a single week ! I ask not for years, though an age were too little for the much I have to do. 20 On my saying, we could ncft do too much; that heaven was a blessed place — 21 So much the worse. 22 'Tis lost! 'tis lost !— *23 Heaven is to me the severest part of hell ! 24 Soon after, I proposed prayer. 25 Pray you that can. 26 I never prayed. 27 I cannot pray, 28 nor need I. Is not heaven on my side already ? 29 It closes with my conscience : its severest strokes but second my own. His friend being much touched, even to tears, at this, (who 30 could forbear? I could not,) with a most affectionate look, he 31 said, Keep those tears for thyself. I have undone thee. 32 Dost weep for me? 33 That's cruel. 34 What can pain me more ? 35 Here his friend, too much affected, would have left him. 36 No; stay. 37 Thou still may est hope, therefore hear me. 38 How madly have I talked ! how madly hast thou listened and 39 believed ! But look on my present state, as a full answer to thee and to myself. This body is all weakness and pain, but my 40 soul, as if strung up by torment to greater strength and spirit, 332 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. is full powerful to reason : full mighty to suffer. And that which thus triumphs within the jaws of mortality, is doubtless 41 immortal ; and as for a Deity, nothing less than an Almighty could inflict what I feel. I was about to congratulate this passive, involuntary confes- 42 sor, on his asserting the two prime articles of his creed, extort- ed by the rack of nature, when he thus very passionately : No ; no ! let me speak on ; I have not long to speak. — My much- 43 injured friend ! my soul, as my body, lies in ruins ; in scattered fragments of thought : remorse for the past, throws my thoughts 44 on the future. Worse dread of the future, strikes it back on 45 the past. I turn and turn, and find no ray. Didst thou feel 46 half the mountain that is on me, thou wouldst struggle with the martyr for his stake, and bless heaven for the flame : that is not an everlasting flame : that is not an unquenchable fire. 47 How were we* struck ! 48 Yet, soon after, still more. With 49 what an eye of distraction, what a face of despair, he cried out, My principles have poisoned my friend ; my extravagance has beggared my boy ; my unkindness has murdered my wife ! — 50 And is there another hell? Oh! thou blasphemed, yet most 51 indulgent, Lord God ! hell itself is a refuse, if it hide me from thy frown ! 52 Soon after, his understanding failed. His terrified imagina- 53 tion uttered horrors not to be repeated, or ever forgot; and ere the sun rose, the gay, young, noble, ingenious, accomplished, and most wretched Altamont expired. Young. Sentence 6th, 1th.— They make together a single compact, of the second form. Sentence 17th, 18tk. — Fragmentary simple indefinite interrogative exclamatory. " What would I not give for," or "how I wish ibr," understood before each. Sent. 36th. — Doublo compact declarative: "Go not, but stay." Sent. 31th. — Single compact declarative, second form: correlative words, because — therefore. Sent. 4-2d. — "No, no, but let," &c; that is, "do not interrupt me, do not interrupt me, but," &c. The sentence is broken off at speak, but the continuation, "/or or because my moments are numbered," 13 obvious. Sent. 51st.— The compound compellative here has, it will be observed, a single compact construction, " though thou blasphemed, yet most," &c. : the sentence which follows is a single compact of the second form. SEC. XXI. THE DEATH OF HAMILTON. 1 " How are the mighty fallen !" 2 And, regardless as we are of vulgar deaths, shall not the fall of the mighty affect us ? 3 A short time since, and he, who is the occasion of our sor- 4 rows, was the ornament of his country. He stood on an emi- 5 nence, and glory covered him. From that eminence he has 6 fallen : suddenly, forever, fallen. His intercourse with the living world is now ended ; and those who would hereafter find him, must seek him in the grave. There, cold and lifeless, is the heart which just now was the seat of friendship ; there, EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 333 7 dim and sightless is the eye, whose radiant and enlivening orb « beamed with intelligence ; and there, closed forever, are those lips, on whose persuasive accents Ave have so often, and so lately hung with transport ! From the darkness which rests upon his 8 tomb, there proceeds, methinks, a light in which it is clearly seen, that those gaudy objects, which men pursue, are only 9 phantoms. In this light how dimly shines the splendor of victory : how humble appears the majesty of grandeur ! The 10 bubble, which seemed to have so much solidity, has burst; and we again see, that all below the sun is vanity. True, the funeral eulogy has been pronounced, the sad and solemn procession has moved, the badge of mourning has al- ii ready been decreed, and presently the sculptured marble will lift up its front, proud to perpetuate the name of Hamilton, and rehearse to the passing traveller his virtues ; (just tributes of respect, and to the living useful ;) but to him, mouldering in 12 his narrow and humble habitation, what are they? How vain! how unavailing ! 13 Approach, and behold, while I lift from his sepulchre its 14 covering ! Ye admirers of his greatness ! ye emulous of his 15 talents and his fame, approach and behold him now. How 16 pale! how silent! No martial bands admire the adroitness of his movements ; no fascinating throng weep, and melt, and 1*7 tremble at his eloquence! Amazing change! A shroud! a 18 coffin! a narrow, subterraneous cabin! — this is all that now remains of Hamilton ! and is this all that remains of Hamilton ? 19 During a life so transitory, what lasting monument, then, can our fondest hopes erect ! 20 My brethren ! we stand on the borders of an awful gulf, which is swallowing up all things human ; and is there, amidst this universal wreck, nothing stable, nothing abiding, nothing 21 immortal, on which poor, frail, dying man can fasten? Ask the hero, ask the statesman, whose wisdom you have been 22 accustomed to revere, and he will tell you. He will tell you, did I say ? He has already told you, from his death-bed ; and his illumined spirit, still whispers from the heavens, with well- 23 known eloquence, the solemn admonition : "Mortals hastening to the tomb, and once the companions of my pilgrimage, take warning and avoid my errors ; cultivate the virtues I have recommended ; choose the Saviour I have chosen ; live disin- terestedly ; live for immortality ; and would you rescue any thing from final dissolution, lay it up in God." — President Nott. Sentence 'id. — A semi-interrogative: the parts connected compactly: though — yet, the cor- relative words. Sentence 3d, — A single compact, third form. a When a _ short time since was, then." Sentence llth. — A single compact, second form, correlative words, indeed — fiuf, in the first 334 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. part; in the second, simple indefinite interrogative : the whole a semi-interrogative : the parti conneeted closely. Sentence lCfA. — A double compact exclamatory with the llrwt proposition, comprising two members, only expressed. Sentence \lth. — A fragmentary .simple declarative exclamatory. Sentence \8th. — A broken close declarative exclamatory. Sentence 2\st. — A compound declarative single compact, third form : correlative words, if— then. SEC. XXII. BURNING OF THE FAME, AND ESCAPE OF THE PASSENGERS. 1 We embarked on the 2d inst. and sailed at daylight for Eng- land, from the East Indies, with every prospect of a quick and 2 prosperous passage. The ship was every thing we could wish ; and, having closed my charge here, much to my satisfaction, it 3 was one of the happiest days of my life. We were, perhaps, too happy ; for in the evening came a sad reverse. Sophia had 4 just gone to bed, and I had thrown off half my clothes, when a cry of Fire ! — Fire ! — roused us from our calm content ; and 5 in five minutes the whole ship was in flames ! I ran to examine whence the flames principally issued, and found that the fire had 6 its origin immediately under our cabin. — Down with the boats ! 7 —Where is Sophia?— 8 Here.— 9 The children?— 10 Here.— 11 A rope to the side ! — 12 Lower Lady Raffles. — 13 Give her to 14 me, says one. — I'll take her, says the captain. — 15 Throw the 16 gunpowder overboard. — It cannot be got at : it is in the maga- 11 zine, close to the fire. — Stand clear of the powder. 18 Scuttle 19 the water-cask. — Water! water! — 20 Where's Sir Stamford? 21 Come into the boat: Nilson ! ISFilson! come into the boat. — 22 Push off! push off! 23 Stand clear of the after part of the ship. 24 All this passed much quicker than I can write it. We pushed 25 off; and as we did so, the flames burst out of our cabin windows, and the whole after part of the ship was in flames. SEC. XXHL OUR WISHES HELP TO DECEIVE US. 1 Baltimore. What were you laughing at ? Peter. Only, sir, at Squire Freeman, (he : he : he !) who 2 was riding up the back lane, a little while ago, on his new crop- eared hunter, as fast as he could canter, with all the skirts of his coat flapping about him, for all the world like a clucking hen upon a sow's back — He : he : he ! — 3 Bait. Thou art pleasant, Peter ; and what then ? Pet. When just turning the corner, your honor, as it might 4 be so, my mother's brown calf (bless its snout ! I shall love it for it, as long as I live) set its face through the hedge, and said " Mow !" 5 Bait. And he fell : did he ? EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 335 6 Pet. Lord, yes, your honor ! into a good soft bed of all the rotten garbage of the village. 7 Bait. And you saw this : did you ? 8 Pet. yes, your honor ! as plain as the nose on my face. 9 Bait. Ha : ha : ha : ha : ha ! and you really saw it ? 10 David. (Aside,) I wonder my master can demean himself so as to listen to that knave's tales ; I'm sure he was proud enough once. 1 1 Bait. (Still laughing.) You really saw it ? 12 Pet. Ay, your honor ! and many more than me saw it. 1 3 Bait. And there were a number of people to look at him too ? 14 Pet. Oh ! your honor ! all the rag-tag of the parish were grinning at him. 1 5 Bait. Ha : ha : ha : ha : ha ! this is excellent ! ha : ha : ha ! 16 He would shake himself but ruefully before them ? (Still laughing violently.) 1 7 Pet. Ay, sir : he shook the wet straws and the withered 18 turnip-tops from his back. It would have done your heart good to have seen him. 19 Dav. Nay, you know well enough, you do, that there is nothing but a bank of dry sand in that corner. (Indignantly to Peter.) 20 Bait. (Impatiently to David) Poo! silly fellow ! it is the 21 dirtiest nook in the village. — And he rose and shook himself: ha : ha : ha ! I did not know that thou wert such a humorous 22 fellow, Peter: here is money for thee to drink the brown calf's health. 23 Pet. Ay, your honor ! for certain he shall have a noggen. 24 Dav. (Aside.) To think now that he should demean him- self so ! Joanna Baillie. Sent. 10th. — Sing, compact: therefore— for : the second part begins another, of which, one part only is expressed. Sent. 19tA. — Therefore nay, (it would not have done his heart good,) for you know, &c. Double compact : the second part begins another sentence which re- mains unfinished. Sent. 24.— Fragmentary declarative close exclamatory sentence, with something like " is painful" understood at the end. SEC. XXrV. A CURTAIN LECTURE OF MRS. CAUDLE. 1 Bah ! that's the third umbrella gone since Christmas. 2 What 3 were you to do ! Why, let him go home in the rain, to be sure. 4 I'm very certain there was nothing about him that could spoil. 5 — Take cold, indeed ! 6 He doesn't look like one of the sort to 7 take cold. Besides, he'd have better taken cold than taken our 8 umbrella. — Do you hear the rain, Mr. Caudle ? 9 1 say, do you 10 hear the rain? And as I'm alive, if it isn't St. S within's day ! 330 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 11 Do you hear it against the windows ? 12 Nonsense : you don't impose upon me ; you can't be asleep with such a shower as 13 that! Do you hear it, I say? 14 Oh! you do hear it! — 15 Well, that's a pretty flood, I think, to last for six weeks ; and no 10 stirring all the time out of the house. Pooh ! don't think me a 17 fool, Mr. Caudle ; dont insult me ; he return the umbrella ! Any- 18 body would think you were born yesterday. As if anybody 1 9 ever did return an umbrella ! There : do you hear it ? 20 Worse 21 and worse. Cats and dogs, and for six weeks: always six weeks ; and no umbrella ! 22 I should like to know how the children are to go to school 23 to-morrow. They shan't go through such weather ; I am de- 24 termined. No ; they shall stop at home and never learn any thing, (the blessed creatures !) sooner than go and get wet ! And 25 when they grow up, I wonder who they'll have to thank for know- 26 rag nothing : who, indeed, but their father. People w T ho can't feel for their own children ought never to be fathers. 27 But I know why you lent the umbrella : oh ! yes, I know very 28 well. I was going out to tea at dear mother's to-morrow : you 29 knew that, and you did it on purpose. Don't tell me ; you hate me to go there, and take every mean advantage to hinder me. 30 But don't you think it, Mr. Caudle ; no, sir ; if it comes down in 31 buckets full, I'll go all the more. No ; and I won't have a cab ! 32 Where do you think the money's to come from ? 33 You've got 34 nice high notions at that club of yours? A cab, indeed! 35 Cost me sixteen-pence, at least : sixteen-pence ! two-and-eight- 36 pence; for there's back again. Cabs, indeed! I should like 37 to know who's to pay for 'em; for I'm sure you can't, if you go on as you do, throwing away your property, and beggaring your children, buying umbrellas ! 38 Do }^ou hear the rain, Mr. Caudle ? 39 1 say, do you hear 40 it ? But I don't care — I'll go to mother's to-morrow — I will ; and what's more I'll walk every step of the way ; and you know 41 that will give me my death. Don't call me a foolish woman ; 42 it's you that's the foolish man. You know I can't wear clogs ; and with no umbrella, the wet's sure to give me a cold : it al- 43 ways does : but what do you care for that ? Nothing at all. 44 I may be laid up for what you care, as I dare say I shall ; and 45 a pretty doctor's bill there'll be. I hope there will. 46 It will 47 teach you to lend your umbrellas again. I shouldn't wonder if I caught my death : yes, and that's what you lent the umbrella 48 for. Of course ! 49 Nice clothes I'll get, too, trapesing through weather like this. 50 My gown and bonnet will be spoiled quite. 51 Needn't I wear 52 'em then ? Indeed, Mr. Caudle, I shall wear 'em. 53 No, sir; EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS 337 I'm not going out a dowdy to please you or anybody else. 64 Gracious knows ! it isn't often that I step over the threshold ; — indeed, I might as well be a slave at once : better, I should say ; but when I do go out, Mr. Caudle, I choose to go as a lady. 55 Oh ! that rain — if it isn't enough to break in the windows. 56 Ugh ! I look forward with dread for to-morrow ! 57 How I am to go to mother's, I'm sure I can't tell, but if I die, I'll do 58 it. — No, sir; I won't borrow an umbrella: no; and you shan't 59 buy one. ( With gwat emphasis.) Mr. Caudle, if you bring home another umbrella, I'll throw it in the street. 60 Ha ! And it was only last week I had a new nozzle put to 61 that umbrella. I'm sure if I'd have known as much as I do 62 now, it might have gone without one. Paying for new nozzles 63 for other people to laugh at you ! Oh ! it's all very well for 64 you ; you can go to sleep. You've no thought for your poor patient wife, and your own dear children ; you think of nothing but lending umbrellas ! 65 Men, indeed ! — call themselves lords of creation ! pretty lords, when they can't even take care of an umbrella ! I know that walk to-morrow will be the death of me, but 66 that's what you want : then you may go to your club, and do as you like ; and then nicely my poor dear children will be used ; 67 but then, sir, then you'll be happy. Oh ! don't tell me ! I know you will : else you'd never have lent the umbrella ! 68 You have to go on Thursday about that summons ; and, of 69 course, you can't go. No, indeed : you don't go without the 70 umbrella. You may lose the debt for what I care — it won't be so much as spoiling your clothes — better lose it ; people deserve to lose debts who lend umbrellas ! 71 And I should like to know how I'm to go to mother's with- 72 out the umbrella. Oh ! don't tell me that I said I would go ; 73 that's nothing to do with it : nothing at all. She'll think I'm neglecting her ; and the little money we're to have, we shan't have at all : — because we've no umbrella. The children, too ! — (dear things ! — ) they'll be sopping wet ; 74 for they shan't stay at home ; they shan't lose their learning ; 75 it's all their father will leave them, I'm sure. — But they shall go to school. Don't tell me they shouldn't ; (you are so aggra- 76 vating, Caudle, you'd spoil the temper of an angel ;) they shall go to school : mark that ; and if they get their deaths of cold, it's not my fault ; I didn't lend the umbrella. " Here," says Caudle, in his manuscript, " I fell asleep and 77 dreamed that the sky was turned into green calico, with whale- bone ribs : that, in fact, the whole world revolved under a tre- mendous umbrella !" 29 838 EXERCISES GN PARAGRAPHS. Sentence 2d.— Mr. Caudle is supposed to have asked here, " What he should have done.* Mrs. C. repeats his words as if she had not heard distinctly ; and ol course her question take* the rising slide. (See Rule III. Excep.) Sentence Gth — The first part of a decl. double com- pact: the second part understood: " but the reverse." Sentence 1th.— The first part of a sin- gle compact, itself compact. Therefore— because, the correlative words. u Because we shall want it ourselves" is probably the reason in the mind of the speaker. Sent. Mtk and VMh. — These being repetitions of the def. interrog., take the downward slide. Sentence 12th.— " Therefore you don't, because therefore you can't [; because it makes too much noise."} Sew tence 15th. — " As it is well that you hear, so that's a pretty flood, &c." Sentence l(Hh.— Mr- C. is supposed to have said the umbrella would be returned. A double compact declar. excl. : thus made out " Don't think me fool enough to believe it ; don't insult my understand- ing by calling on me to believe it ; for he will never return the umbrella." The second propo- sition is virtually negative, though it has an affirmative form. Sentence 21st. — " It rains cat* and dogs, and so it will rain for six weeks ;" that is, " as it rains, so it will rain, &c." Sen- tence 23d. — A double compact, with the first and second proposition expressed : " They shall not, &c, for on that I'm determined." Sentence 24th.— They shall not, &.c, but they shall, &c. Sen- tence 25th. — Who ungrammatically used for whom. Compound decl. imperf. loose. Sentence 29th.— Very much abbreviated. " Dont tell me that, for it is not true : you hate, &c." Sen- tence 30«A.— u But don't you think it ; no, sir ; for if it, &c." Sentence 31st— u Not only so, indeed, but I wont have a cab /" Sentence 33d. — An indirect-interrogative, first kind. Sentence 37 th. — Indirect semi-interrogative exclam. Sentence 40th. — Extremely abbreviated and fragmentary again. " But yet I don't care ; [if it does rain :] yet I will go, &c„ [if it does rain :] yet I will, [if it does rain ; &c."] Sentence 41st. — " Therefore don't because it's you, &c." Sentence 42d. —The first part of this semi-interrog. is a fragment, double compact, with the first proposition only expressed : the second, or the reason for the first being understood. Sentence 12d,-~ M Therefore don't, for that's, &c" SEC. XXV. DISHONORABLE MEANS TO SUCCESS, NEVER TO BE EMPLOYED. 1 Free. How now, Jenkinson? 2 Things go on prosperously, I hope? 3 Jen. Sir, I am concerned — or, indeed, sorry — that is to say, I wish I could have the satisfaction to say that they do. 4 Free. What say you ? 5 Sorry and satisfied ? You are a 6 smooth spoken man, Mr. Jenkinson ; but tell me the worst at *7 once. I thought I had been pretty sure of it, as the poll stood this morning ? 8 Jen. It would have given me great pleasure, sir, to have confirmed that opinion ; but unfortunately for you, and unpleas- antly for myself — 9 Free. Tut ; tut ! 10 Speak faster, man ! 11 What is it ? Jen. An old gentleman from Ensford, who formerly re- ceived favors from Mrs. Baltimore's father, has come many a 12 mile across the country, out of pure good-will, to vote for him, with ten or twelve distant voters at his heels ; and this, I am free to confess, is a thing that was never taken into our calcu- lation. -13 Free. That was very wrong, though ; we should have taken 14 every thing into our calculation. Shall I lose it, think you? 15 I would rather lose ten thousand pounds. 16 Jen. A smaller sum than that, I am almost sure — that is to say, I think I may have the boldness to promise, would secure it to you. 1 1 Free. How so? EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 339 18 Jen. Mr. Baltimore, you know, has many unpleasant claims upon him. 19 Free. Debts, you mean; but what of that? Jen. Only that I can venture to assure you, many of his 20 creditors would have the greatest pleasure in life in obliging me ; and when you have bought up their claims, it will be a very simple matter just to have him laid fast for a little while. 21 The disgrace of that situation will effectually prevent the last 22 days of the poll from preponderating in his favor. It is the easiest thing in the world. 28 Free. Is that your scheme ? 24 fie : fie ! 25 The rudest- tongued lout in the parish would have blushed to propose it. 26 Let me lose it then ! 27 To be a member of Parliament, and 28 not an honest man ! — fie : fie : fie ! Joanna Baillie. Attention should be given in the delivery of this piece to the spontaneous exclams., and the indirect interrogatives. Sent, ith is an example of the inversion of an indefinite interrog. slide. (See Rule III.) Sent. 13th. — Yet that, &c., though he had received favors, &c SEC. XXVI. NOTICE OF A MORTGAGE SALE. 1 Mortgage Sale. Mortgagors, Amos Ives, Anna his wife and Enos Ives ; Mortgagee, Philo Gridley ; Mortgage, dated April 1st, 1843, to secure the payment of $2,027 48, with in- 2 terest : recorded as against Amos and Enos Ives, in the Clerk's office of Oneida county on the 18th day of May, 1843, in Book No. 52 of Mortgages, at pages 88, 89. and 90: recorded as against Anna, wife of Amos aforesaid, in the Clerk's office aforesaid, on the 7th day of June, 1845, at two o'clock, P. M. Amount claimed to be due at the time of the first publication of 3 this notice, $2,027 48, and the interest thereon from the date of said mortgage. This mortgage is, however, a collateral se- curity to another mortgage, dated October 30th, 1841, by said Amos and Anna Ives, to E. and A. L. Collins, and now held by 4 said Gridley ; on which is due $4,699 52, and annual interest from April 1st, 1842 ; so that the sum, really to be raised on this mortgage, will be the amount of deficiency upon the sale of the premises mortgaged to said E. and A. L. Collins. Premises as described in said mortgage : " All those certain pieces of land, lying in New Hartford, Oneida county, and be- ing parts of lot No. 34, in the 7th Grand Division of Cox's Patent : the first of said pieces, containing about ninety acres, 5 more or less, and bounded north by lands formerly owned by Oliver Collins, and now by Amos Ives ; on the east by lands of E. B. Sherman, and also by lands of Abel Wilcox and Timothy Wilcox ; on the south by the great western turnpike ; and on 340 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. the west by land of Salmon Lusk. And the other piece, con- taining about thirty-five acres, is bounded on the north by lands 6 owned by Thomas Palmer, and by the Clinton road ; east by lands of Lewis Sherrill, and south by Lewis Sherrill, and west by lands of Thomas Palmer." By virtue of a power of sale contained in said mortgage, the subscriber will sell the two 7 aforesaid mortgaged parcels of land, separately, on the 5th day of September next, at 2 o'clock, P. M., at the Hotel now kept 8 by N. Porter, in the town and village of New Hartford. Dated June 9th, 1845. P. GRIDLEY, Mortgagee. J. G. Coye, Att'y. Sent. 1st. — Fragmentary simple declarative. " This is a notice of a mortgage sale." The Bubscribers' names are fragmentary compound : u P. Gridley, who is the mortgagee, is the, &c" w J. G. Coye, who is the attorney, is, &c." SEC. XXVII. THE SHIPWRECK. At half-past eight o'clock, hen-coops, spars, 1 And all things, for a chance, had been cast loose, That still could keep afloat the struggling tars ; For yet they strove, although of no great use. There was no light in heaven but a few stars : 2 The boats put off, o'ercrowded with their crews : She gave a heel, and then a lurch to port, And going down head-foremost — sunk, in short. Then rose from sea to sky the wild farewell ; Then shrieked the timid, and stood still the brave; Then some leaped overboard, with dreadful yell, 3, As eager to anticipate their grave ; And the sea yawned around her like a hell ; And down she sucked with her the whirling wave, Like one who grapples with his enemy, And strives to strangle him before he die. And first a universal shriek there rushed, Louder than the loud ocean, like a crash Of echoing thunder ; and then all was hushed, 4 Save the wild wind and the remorseless dash Of billows ; but at intervals there gushed, Accompanied with a convulsive splash, A solitary shriek : the bubbling cry Of some strong swimmer in his agony. Byron. Sent. 1st.— Decl. loose, with two parts : the second part single compact, 1st form. Sent. 2d. - -Decl. loose with three parts: last part mixed: '■•and when going, then." Sent. 3d.— The game with five parts : the third, single compact : " so some, as eager," &c. Sent. Uh.— The same with three parts: the first has a mixture of single compact: louder— than : the second is close : the third, imperfect loose. EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 341 ! SEC. XXVIII. THE FALL OF THE OPPRESSOR A SOURCE OF CONSOLATION TO GOOD MEN. Oh ! how comely it is, and how reviving To the spirits of just men, long oppressed, When God, into the hands of their deliverer Puts invincible might, 1 To quell the mighty of the earth : the oppressor : The brute and boisterous force of violent men, Hardy and industrious to support , Tyrannic power, but raging to pursue The righteous, and all such as honor truth ! He all their ammunition And feats of war defeats : With plain heroic magnitude of mind, And celestial vigor armed, 2 Their armories and magazines contemns : Renders them useless ; while With winged expedition, Swift as the lightning glance, he executes His errand on the wicked ; who, surprised, Lose their defence, distracted and amazed. Milton. Sentence 1st.— An indefinite interrogative single compact : correlative words then— when. The second part is imperfect loose, with three sub-parts ; the last of which contains a compact conclusion : correlative words, indeed— but. SEC. XXLX. THE POWER OF VERSE TO PERPETUATE. 'Tis not a pyramid of marble stone, Though high as our ambition ; 1 'Tis not a tomb cut out in brass, which can Give life unto the ashes of a man ; But verses only : they shall fresh appear Whilst there are men to read or hear. * When time shall make the lasting brass decay, And eat the pyramid away ; 2 Turning that monument wherein men trust Their names, to what it keeps, poor dust ; Then shall the epitaph remain and be New graven in eternity. Cowley. Sentence 1 st. — Double compact: 1st and 3d part expressed: the first part has two mem- bers : the first member single compact : yet — though : the second, close. The second part of the double comp. beginning with but, loose perf. Sent. 2d.— A single compact: when— then. 29* 342 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. SEC. XXX. IMAGINATION THE RULING FACULTY OF THE LUNATIC, THB LOVER, AND THE POET. 1 The lunatic, the lover, and the poet Are of imagination all compact.* One sees more devils than vast hell can hold ; That is the madman : the lover, all as frantic, Sees Helen's beauty in a brow of Egypt : 2 The poet's eye, in a fine phrensy rolling, Doth glance from heaven to earth, from earth to heaven; And, as imagination bodies forth The forms of things unknown, the poet's pen Turns them to shapes, and gives to airy nothing A local habitation and a name. ShaJcspeare. SEC. XXXI. THE LANDING OF THE "ILGRIMS. The breaking waves dashed high On a stern and rock-bound coast ; And the woods, against a stormy sky, Their giant branches tossed ; 1 And the heavy night hung dark The hills and waters o'er ; When a band of exiles moored their bark, On the wild New-England shore. Not as the conqueror comes, They, the true-hearted came ; Not with the roll of the stirring drums, And the trumpet that sings of fame ; 2 Not as the flying come, In silence and in fear ; They shook the depths of the desert's gloom, With their hymns of lofty cheer. .3 Amidst the storm they sang ; And the stars heard and the sea ! And the sounding aisles of the dim woods rang To the anthem of the free ! 4 The ocean-eagle soared From his nest by the white wave's foam ; And the rocking pine of the forest roared : — This was their welcome home ! Hemam. 1st. — Then the breaking, &c, when. Sent. 2d.— Double compact* * /. e. composed. ^ EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 343 SEC. XXXH. BOLDNESS AND PERSEVERANCE IN THE CAUSE OF JUSTICE ONLY, COMMENDABLE. Bare nobly then ; but, conscious of your trust, 1 As ever warm and bold, be ever just; Nor court applause in these degenerate days : The villain's censure is extorted praise. 2 But chief, be steady in a noble end, And show mankind that truth has yet a friend. 3 'Tis mean for empty praise of wit to write, As foplings grin to show their teeth are white ; To brand a doubtful folly with a smile, Or madly blaze unknown defects, is vile : 'Tis doubly vile, when, but to prove your art, You fix an arrow in a blameless heart. Pope. Sent. 3d.— If " 'tis mean for empty praise, &c, then 'tis doubly mean, &c" 1 am not sure but that indeed— but would express the sense better. SEC. XXXm. THE CONSOLATION OF VIRTUE IN AFFLICTION. Cyriac, this three years day, these eyes, though clear To outward view, of blemish or of spot, 1 Bereft of light their seeing have forgot ; Nor to their idle orbs doth sight appear Of sun, or moon, or star, (throughout the year,) Or man, or woman. Yet I argue not 2 Against Heaven's hand or will, nor bate a jot Of heart or hope ; but still bear up and steer 3 Right onward. What supports me, dost thou ask ? The conscience, friend, to have lost them overplied 4 In liberty's defence : mv noble task, Of which all Europe rings from side to side. 5 This thought might lead me through the world's vain mask, Content though blind, had I no better guide. Milton. Sent. 2d— Not equivalent to neither : whole sentence perfect loose. Sent. 3d.— A definite close interrogative transposed. Sent. 5th. — Single compact declarative, third form ; correla- tive words, yet — though : " content though blind," a circumstance, which may be regarded aa ynafeing the whole a mixed sentence. SEC. XXXTV. MUSIC AND LOVE. If music be the food of love, play on : Give me excess of it ; that, surfeiting, The appetite may sicken, and so die. That strain again : it had a dying fall : 344 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 2 0, it came o'er my ear, like the sweet south, That breathes upon a bank of violets : 3 Stealing and giving odor. — Enough : no more ; 'Tis not so sweet now as it was before. — ShaTcspeare. Sent. 3d. — JVo more, and what follows, form the first and second part of a double compact; but it is to be observed that the second part, is in turn the first part of another, of which the other parts are suppressed. "Play no more. for therefore it is not, &c." The delivery should correspond. SEC. XXXV. THE LOVE OF NATURE. 1 The love of Nature, and the scenes she draws, Is Nature's dictate. Strange ! there should be found Who, self-imprisoned in their proud saloons, Renounce the odors of the open field For the unscented fictions of the loom ; 2 Who, satisfied with only pencilled scenes, Prefer to the performance of a God The inferior wonders of an artist's hand ! Lovely, indeed, the mimic works of art, But Nature's works far lovelier. Cowper. Sent. 2d.— A mixed sentence : as a whole comp. decl. single compact of the third form : correlative words, therefore — because : the first, part fragmentary : it is being suppressed be- fore strange, and that after it. Therefore it is strange that, &c. — because lovely indeed, &c. The second part is compact, of the first form, and has the correlative words indeed — but, in- stead of though — yet, which would be more accurate. The exclamation point after strange, represents the comma : after hand, the semicolon. SEC. XXXVL DEATH, A FRIEND OF THE GOOD. 1 I will teach the world 2 To thank thee. Who are thine accusers ? 3 Who ? 4 The living ! they who never felt thy power, And know thee not ! The curses of the wretch 5 Whose crimes are rife, his sufferings, when thy hand Is on him, and the hour he dreads is come, Are writ among thy praises. But the good : 6 Does he, whom thy kind hand dismissed to peace, Upbraid the gentle violence that took off His fetters, and unbound his prison cell ? Bryant. Sent. 3d.— Who should be delivered with the rising slide. (See Rule III. Exception.) Sent. 4th.— A compound loose definite interrogative. Sent. 6th.— A semi-interrogative, with a per- fect loose construction of the parts. EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 345 SEC. XXXVIL A SISTER'S INTERCESSION. 1 Isab. To-morrow ! 2 0, that's sudden ! 3 Spare him ! spare him ! 4 He's not prepared for death ! Even for our kitchens, 5 We kill the fowls of season ; shall we serve Heaven, With less respect than we do minister 6 To our gross selves ? Good, good my lord, bethink you : Who is it that hath died for this offence ? — V There's many have committed it ? Aug. The law hath not been dead, though it hath slept : 8 Those many had not dared to do that evil, If the first man that did the edict infringe, Had answered for his deed. Shakspeare. Sent. 1st. — Fragment, simp. def. interrog. excl. Sent. 2d. — Single compact, third form : there- fore — because he's not. Sent. 5th. — " If even, then shall we, &c." Sent. 1th. — A compound close indirect interrogative. Sent. 8th.— " Yet the law, though it, &c" " Then those, if the, SEC. XXXVm. WHAT CONSTITUTES A STATE. What constitutes a State ? Not high-raised battlements or labored mound, Thick wall or moated gate ; Not cities proud, with spires and turrets crowned ; Not bays and broad-arm ports, Where, laughing at the storm, rich navies ride ; Not starred and spangled courts, Where low-browed baseness wafts perfume to pride ; No ; men : high-minded men : With powers, as far above dull brutes endued In forest, brake, or den, As beasts excel cold rocks and brambles rude : Men, who their duties know, But know their rights ; and, knowing, dare maintain : Prevent the long-aimed blow, And crush the tyrant, while they rend the chain. These constitute a state ; And sovereign law, that state's collected will, O'er thrones and globes elate Sits empress : crowning good : repressing ill. Smit by her sacred frown, The fiend discretion* like a vapor sinks ; Arbitrary power. 846 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. And e'en the all-dazzling crown Hides his faint rays, and at her bidding shrinks. 5 Such was this heaven-loved isle : Than Lesbos fairer, and the Cretan shore ! 6 No more shall freedom smile ? Shall Britons languish and be men no more ? Since all must life resign, 7 Those sweet rewards which decorate the brave 'Tis folly to decline, And steal inglorious to the silent grave. Sir William Jones. Sentence 1st. — A compound declarative double compact, with first and third proposition : the first having five members ; and the second being perfect loose in four fragmentary parts ; of which the fourth contains an imperfect loose. JVb, the fifth member of the first part, is the equivalent of the other four. (See Rule VIII. 3, Classification*, Double Compact, General Note, and Simp. Declarative, yes, no.) Sentence A.th. — A compound declarative single compact, third form : correlative words when — then. Sentence 7th.— A compound declarative single compact, second form: correlative word* since — therefore. SEC. XXXIX. A STORY LOSES NOTHING IN ITS PROGRESS. Two honest tradesmen meeting in the strand, 1 One took the other briskly by the hand : " Hark ye," said he : " 'tis an odd story this, 2 About the crows !" — " I don't know what it is," 3 Replied his friend.—" No ! 4 I'm surprised at that; Where I come from, it is the common chat. 5 But you shall hear : an odd affair, indeed ! And that it happened, they are all agreed. (Not to detain you from a thing so strange,) 6 A gentleman, that lives not far from 'Change, This week, in short, (as all the alley knows,) Taking a puke, has thrown up three black crows." 7 " Impossible !" — 8 " Nay, but it's really true ; I had it from good hands, and so may you." — 9 "From whose, I pray?" — 10 So having named the man, Straight to inquire his curious comrade ran. 11 "Sir, did you tell — ?" relating the affair. — " Yes, sir : I did ; and if it's worth your care, 12 Ask Mr. Such-a-one : he told it me ; — But, by-the-by, 'twas two black crows : not three." 13 Resolved to trace so wondrous an event, Whip to the third, the virtuoso went. 14 " Sir " — and so forth. — " Why, yes : the thing is fact, Though, in regard to number, not exact : EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 347 15 It was not two black crows; 'twas only one : The truth of that, you may depend upon : The gentleman himself told me the case." — 16 "Where may I find him?"— 1Y " Why,— in such a place." 18 Away he goes ; and, having found him out, — ° Sir, be so good as to resolve a doubt." 19 Then to his last informant he referred, And begged to know, if true what he had heard. 20 "Did you, sir, throw up a black crow?" — 21 "Not I!" — 22 " Bless me ! how people propagate a lie ! 23 Black crows have been thrown up, three, two, and one, And here I find, at last, all comes to none ! 24 Did you say nothing of a crow at all ?" — 25 "Crow? — crow? — 26 Perhaps I might, now I recall 27 The matter over." — "And pray, sir: what was it?" — " Why, I was horrid sick, and, at the last, 28 I did throw up, (and told my neighbor so,) Something that was as black, sir, as a crow." Byrom. Sentence 1st.— " When two, &c, then one, &c" The entire sentence semi-interrogative concluding with a simp, indir. interrog. excl. Sentence 3d. — No is a comp. close def. interrog. excL " Do you say you don't, &c. !" Sentence 4tA.— " Therefore I'm surprised, &c, for where, &c." Sentence 15th. — And used for but. Sentence \lth. — The circumstance " relating, &c," obeys the law of the preceding slide. Sentence 12tA. — The last part of this, is an inverted dou- ble compact Sentence 14th— Fragmentary. " Sir, did you say that threw up, &c." (See Conventional Emphasis.) Sentence 25th. — A loose def. interrog. Sentence 26th. — The first part of sing, compact disjoined by the question which follows from the second part in Sentence 28th ; which see. " Therefore I might, &a, because I was horrid, &c." SEC XL. HOW WE SHOULD LIVE. So live, that when thy summons comes to join The innumerable caravan, that moves To that mysterious realm, where each shall take His chamber in the silent halls of death ; Thou go not like the quarry slave at night, Scourged to his dungeon, but, sustained and soothed By an unfaltering trust, approach thy grave, Like one who wraps the drapery of his couch About him, and lies down to pleasant dreams. — Bryant. A mixed sentence, combining two single and one double compact " So live, that when thy summons, &&— then thou go not &c— *«**, &c" SEC. XLL THE DYING CHRISTIAN. 1 Vital spark of heavenly flame ! Quit, oh quit, this mortal frame ! 348 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 2 Trembling, hoping, lingering, flying ; — Oh the pain, the bliss, of dying ! 3 Cease, fond Nature ! cease thy strife, And let me languish into life. 4 Hark ! 5 They whisper : angek say, Sister spirit, come away. What is this absorbs me quite : 6 Steals my senses : shuts my sight : Drowns my spirits : draws my breath ? 1 Tell me, my soul ! can this be Death ? The world recedes : it disappears : 8 Heaven opens on my eyes : my ears With sounds seraphic ring : Lend, lend your wings ! I mount ! I fly ! 9 O Grave ! where is thy victory ? Death ! where is thy sting ? Pope. There is great danger, in the delivery of this piece, of falling into a whining, canting, m< Ured manner. Read it, if possible, as you would read prose. SEC. XLH. THE STRATAGEM OF A THIEF. In Broad-street buildings on a winter's night, Snug by his parlor fire, a gouty wight Sat all alone : with one hand rubbing His feet, rolled up in fleecy hose ; With t' other he'd beneath his nose The Public Leger ; in whose columns grubbing, He noted all the sales of hops, Ships, shops, and slops, Gum, galls, and groceries, ginger, gin, Tar, tallow, turmeric, turpentine, and tin ; When, lo ! a decent personage in black, Entered and most politely said, " Your footman, sir, has gone his nightly track To the King's Head, And left your door ajar ; which I Observed in passing by, And thought it neighborly to give you notice." " Ten thousand thanks : how very few get, In time of danger, Such kind attention from a stranger ! Assuredly that fellow's throat is Doomed to a final drop at Newgate ? He knows, too, (the unconscious elf,) EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. 349 That there's no soul at home except myself." " Indeed ! replied the stranger, (looking grave,) Then he's a double knave : He knows that rogues and thieves by scores Nightly beset unguarded doors ; And see how easily might one 5 Of these domestic foes, Even beneath your very nose, Perform his knavish tricks : Enter your room, as I have done, Blow out your candles thus, — and thus,— Pocket your silver candlestick, And walk off — thus." ■ So said, so done : he made no more remark, 6 Nor waited for replies, But marched off with his prize : Leaving the gouty merchant in the dark. Sent. 1st. — Decl. perf. loose with five parts : the first ending at alone, simple decl. ; thj second, single compact ; as with one, so with the other ; the third, single compact, 3d form, 2d var. when grubbing, then he noted : the fourth, close : the fifth, the same. Sent. 2d. — Semi-interrog. excl. Sent. 3d. — Indirect interrog. Sent. 4th. — Close. Sent. 5tk. — Decl. perf. loose : single compact in the first part ; if— then ; close in the second ; imperf. loose in the third. Sent. 6th. — Perfect loose decl. : single compact in 1st part, a's said, so done ; the first so for as ; double comp. in the second part ; 1st and 3d part expressed ; simple decl. in the last part. SEC. XLffl. THE SOLILOQUY OF KING RICHARD m. 1 Give me another horse : — bind up my wounds : — Have mercy, Jesu : — soft : I did but dream ? — 2 0, coward conscience, how dost thou afflict me ! — 3 The lights burn blue. — 4 It is now dead midnight. — 5 What do I fear ? 6 Myself? 7 There's none else by ? 8 Richard loves Richard ; that is, I am I. 9 Is there a murderer here ? 10 No : yes ; I am. 11 Then fly. 12 What ? 13 From myself? 14 Great reason ; why ? 15 Lest I revenge. 16 What ? 17 Myself on myself? 18 I love myself? 19 Wherefore? 20 For any good That I myself have done unto myself ? 21 0, no ; alas ! I rather hate myself, For hateful deeds committed by myself. 22 1 am a villain : yet I lie ; I am not. Fool, of thyself speak well : — fool, do not flatter : — 23 My conscience hath a thousand several tongues ; And every tongue brings in a several tale ; And every tale condemns me for a villain. Perjury, perjury, in the highest degree, 24 Murder, stern murder, in the direst degree, 30 350 EXERCISES ON PARAGRAPHS. Throng to the bar, crying all, Guilty ! guilty ! 25 I shall despair. — There is no creature loves me, 26 And, if I die, no soul will pity me : Nay ; wherefore should they ; since that I myself Find in myself no pity to myself ? — Methought the souls of all that I had murdered 21 Came to my tent, and every one did threat To-morrow's vengeance on the head of Richard. Shakspeare. Sentence 1st. — A semi-interrogative, with a loose construction: the interrogative portion, in- direct, of the third kind. Sentence 7th. — An indirect simple interrogative of the third kind. Sentence lOth. — " Therefore yes, for I am." Sentence 12th. — "Fly from whatV" Sentence 13th. — u Shall I fly from myself?" Sentence 14th. — " I have great reason, indeed, to fly from myself, but why 5 1 " Sentence 16th. — " Revenge what §" Sentence 18th. — An indirect interroga- tive. — Sentence 19th. — "Wherefore do I love myself?" Sentence 20th. — "Do I love myself for any good, &C.Y" A close definite interrog. Sentence 21st. — "O, therefore, no, for alas! I rather, &c." Sentence 22d. — " Therefore I he, for I am not." Sentence 26th. — " As there is no creature, &c, so if I die, &c. ;" and " as they will not, so wherefore should they." Sentence 27th.—" As the souls of all, &c, so every one." TABLE OF CONTENTS. CHAPTER FIRST. PAGE Pronunciation 11 Sec. 1. Articulation 11 Vowels 12 Diphthong 18 Consonants 23 Sec. II. Accent 29 1. Articulatory 29 2. Discriminative 29 3. Rhetorical 30 CHAPTER SECOND. Punctuation 31 Sec I. Pauses of sense 31 1. Comma 32 2. Semicolon 36 3. Colon 38 4. Period 41 5. Double period 42 Sec. H. Pauses denoting the nature of the sentence 46 1. Interrogation 47 2. Exclamation 47 Sec. HI. The pause of unusual construc- tion, &c 49 CHAPTER THTRD. Modulation 52 1. Key 52 2. Vocal evolutions or variations 53 ' 1. Sweeps 54 2. Bend 54 3. Slides 55 4. Closes 56 3. Force 57 4. Rate 58 CHAPTER FOURTH. Classification and description of sen- tences 60 Sec. I. Simple Sentences ; punctuation 62 Class I. Declarative 63 Digression on Yes, No, Well 63 Class H. Interrogative 67 1. Definite 67 2. Indefinite 68 3. Indirect 68 Class m. Exclamatory 69 1. Declarative 70 2. Interrogative 70 pag a 3. Compellative 71 4. Spontaneous 72 Sec H. Compound sentences :descrioed and punctuated 72 Class I. Declarative 78 Class H. Interrogative 83 1. Definite 84 2. Indefinite 86 3. Indirect 87 4. Double 88 5. Semi-interrogative 88 Class III. Exclamatory 89 1. Declarative 89 2. Interrogative 93 3. Compellative 97 4. Semi-exclamatory 98 Mixed sentence, circumstance, paren- thesis 99 CHAPTER FHTH. Emphasis 105 Sec. I. Nature of emphasis in general 105 L Common emphasis 105 H. Antithetic emphasis 110 HL Deferred emphasis 112 TV". Conventional emphasis . . 113 Sec. H. Vocal effect of emphasis 113 CHAPTER SIXTH. The bend, sweeps, slides and closes applied : general observations 120 Rule I. for the delivery of simple de- clarative sentences 121 H. for the delivery of simple defi- nite interrogative 125 HI. for the delivery of simple in- definite interrogative 129 FV. for the delivery of simple indi- rect interrogative 132 V. for the delivery of simple ex- clamatory 136 VI. for the delivery of compound declarative close sentences. • 158 VH. for the delivery of compound declarative single compact sentences 166 VHI. for the delivery of compound declarative double compact sentences 194 IX. for the delivery of compound declprative loose sentences . 201 352 TABLE OF CONTENTS. PAGE KtLE X. for the delivery of compound interrogative definite close. . 221 XI. for the delivery of compound ' interrogative definite com- pact 223 XII. for the delivery of compound interrogative definite loose. • 226 XIII. for the delivery of compound interrogative indefinite close 235 XIV. for the delivery of compound interrogative indefinite com- pact 238 XV. for the delivery of compound interrogative indefinite loose 240 XVI. for the delivery of compound interrogative indirect 249 XVII. for the delivery of compound interrogative "double 250 XVIII. for the delivery of compound semi-interrogative 252 XIX. for the delivery of compound exclamatory 269 XX. for the delivery of the mixed sentence 301 XXI. for the delivery of the circum- stance 301 XXII. for the delivery of the paren- thesis 301 CHAPTER SEVENTH. Exercises on paragraphs, or sen- tences IN CONTINUOUS DISCOURSE.- 304 A curtain lecture • 335 A good story loses nothing in its progress 346 A part of Emmet's defence 330 A political pause 329 A sister's intercession 345 A twofold peace 316 Boldness and perseverance in the cause of justice 343 Burning of the Fame 334 pags Death of Altamont 331 Death a friend to the good 344 Death of Hamilton 332 Dishonorable means never to be em- ployed 338 Evils of the old confederation 323 Hamlet's instruction to the players 305 Hamlet's soliloquy 309 How we should hve 347 If God be for you, fear nothing 325 Imagination, the ruling faeulty in the lu- natic, the lover, and the poet 342 Important results from the sufferings of the Pilgrims 325 Landing of the Pilgrims 342 Music and love 343 Notice of a mortgage sale 339 Our wishes help to deceive us 334 Perpetuity of the Union 31? Results of free discussion --» 321 Sorrow for the dead 321 Speech of Brutus 313 Stratagem of a thief 348 The advocates of Charles I. rebuked — 324 The consolation of afflicted virtue 343 The dying Christian 347 The fall of the oppressor a source of con- solation 341 The influence of elegant literature 322 The love of Nature 344 The power of verse to perpetuate ....... 341 The proper limits of benevolence 316 The shipwreck 340 The soliloquy of Richard ffl. 349 The value of public faith 317 Truth invincible if left to grapple with error on equal terms 321 Vehement attack on the Alien and Sedi- tion Law • - 322 Virtue and piety conformity to Nature- • • 319 What constitutes a State 345 igttglislj. PROF. MANDEYLLLE'S READING BOOKS. I. PRIMARY, OR FIRST READER. Price 10 cents. II. SECOND READER. Price 16 cents. These two Readers are formed substantially on the same plan ;. and the second is a continua- tion of the first. The design of both is, to combine a knowledge of the meaning and pronuncia- tion of words, with a knowledge of their grammatical functions. The parts of speech are in- Iroduced successively, beginning with the articles, these are followed by the demonstrative pro- nouns ; and these again by others, class after class, until all that are requisite to form a sentence uave been separately considered ; when the common reading lessons begin. The Second Reader reviews the ground passed over in the Primary, but adds largely to tha tmount of information. The child is here also taught to read writing as well as printed matter ; and in the reading lessons, attention is constantly directed to the different ways in which sentences are formed and connected, and of the peculiar manner in which each of them is deliv- ered. All who have examined these books, have pronounced them a decided and important ad- Tance on every other of the same class in use. HI. THIRD READER. Price 25 cents, IV. FOURTH READER. Price 38 cents. In the first two Readers, the main object is to make the pupil acquainted with the meaning and functions of words, and to impart facility in pronouncing them in sentential connection : the leading design of these, is to form a natural, flexible, and varied delivery. Accordingly, the Third Reader opens with a series of exercises on articulation and modulation, containing numer- ous examples for practice on the elementary sounds (including errors to be corrected) and on the different movements of the voice, produced by sentential structure, by emphasis, and by the pas- sions. The habits formed by these exercises, which should be thoroughly, as they can be easily mastered, under intelligent instruction, find scope for improvement and confirmation in the reading lessons which follow, in the same book and that which succeeds. These lessons have been selected with special reference to the following peculiarities : 1st, Colloquial character ; 2d, Variety of sentential structure ; 3d, Variety of subject matter ; 4th Adaptation to the progressive development of the pupil's mind ; and, as far as possible, 5th, Tendency to excite moral and religious emotions. Great pains have been taken to make the books in these respects, which are, in fact, characteristic of the whole series, superior to any others in use ; with what success, a brief comparison will readily show. V. THE FIFTH READER ; OR, COURSE OF READING. Price 75 cent* VI. THE ELEMENTS OF READING AND ORATORY. Price $1. These books are designed to cultivate the literary taste, as well as the understanding and rocal powers of the pupil. The Course of Reading comprises three parts ; the first part containing a more elaborate description of elementary sounds and the parts of speech grammatically considered than was deemed necessary in the preceding works; nere indispensable : part second, a complete classifi- cation and description of every sentence to be found in the English, or any other language ; ex- amples of which in every degree of expansion, from a few words to the half of an octavo page in length, are adduced, and arranged to be read ; and as each species has its peculiar delivery as well as structure, both are learned at the same time ; part third, paragraphs ; or sentences in their connection unfolding general thoughts, as in the common reading books. It may be ob- served that the selections of sentences in part second, and of paragraphs in part third, comprise some of the finest gems in the language : distinguished alike for beauty of thought and facility of diction. If not found in a school book, they might be approprately called " elegant extracts.'' The Elements of Reading and Oratory closes the series with an exhibition of the whole theory and art of Elocution exclusive of gesture. It contains, besides the classification of sen- tences already referred to, but here presented with fuller statement and illustration, the laws of punctuation and delivery deduced from it : the whole followed by carefully selected pieces foi ■entential analysis and vocal practice. The Result. — The student who acquaints himself thoroughly with the contents of this book, will, as numerous experiments have proved ; 1st, Acquire complete knowledge of the structure of the language ; 2d, Be able to designate any sentence of any book by name at a glance ; 3d, Be able to declare with equal rapidity its proper punctuation ; 4th, Be able to delare, and with sufficient practice to give its proper delivery. Such are a few of the general character- istics of the series of school books which the publishers now offer to the friends and patron? of a sound common school and academic education. For more particular information, reference is respectfully made to the " Hints," which may be found at the beginning of each volume. N. B. The punctuation in all these books conforms, in the main, to the sense and proper de- livery of every sentence, and is a guide to both. When a departure from the proper punctuation eccurs, the proper delivery is indicated. As reading books are usually punctuated, it is a matter of surprise that children should learn to read at all. * " The above series of Reading Books are already very extensively introduced and com- mended by tne most experienced Teachers in the country. " Prof. Mandeville's system is emi- nently original, scientific and practical, and destined wherever it is introduced to supersede at one* all others." dFnglislj. THE SHAKSPEARIAN READER; A. COLLECTION OF THE MOST APPROVED PLAYS OF SHAKSPEARE. Carefully Revised, with Introductory and Explanatory Notes, and a Memoir of the Author. Prepared expressly for the use of Classes, and the Family Reading Circle. BY JOHN W. S. HOWS, Professor of Elocution in Columbia College. • The Man, whom Nature's self hath made To mock herself, and Truth to imitate.— Spenser. One Volume, 12mo, $1 25. At a period when the fame of Shakspeare is "striding the world like a colossus," and edi turns of his works are multiplied with a profusion that testifies the desire awakened in all classe* of society to read and study his imperishable compositions, — there needs, perhaps, but little apolojy for the following selection of his works, prepared expressly to render them unexcep- tionable for the use of Schools, and acceptable for Family reading. Apart from the fact, that Shakspeare is the "well-spring" from which may be traced the origin of the purest poetry in our language,— a long course of professional experience has satisfied" me that a necessity exists for the addition of a work like the present, to our stock of Educational Literature. His writings are peculiarly adapted for the purposes of Elocutionary exercise, when the system of instruction pursued by the Teacher is based upon the true principle of the art, viz. — a careful analysis of the structure and meaning of language, rather than a servile adherence to the arbitrary and me- chanical rules of Elocution. To impress upon the mind of the pupil that words are the exposition of thought, and that in reading, or speaking, every shade of thought and feeling has its appropriate shade of modulated tone, ought to be the especial aim of every Teacher; and an author like Shakspeare, whose every line embodies a volume of meaning, should surely form one of our Elocutionary Text Books. * * * Still, in preparing a selection of his works for the express purpose contem- plated in my design, I have not hesitated to exercise a severe revision of his language, beyond that adopted in any similar undertaking—" Bowdler's Family Shakspeare " not even excepted ;— and simply, because I practically know the impossibility of introducing Shakspeare as a Class Book, or as a satisfactory Reading Book for Families without this precautionary revision.-' Extract from the Preface. ^rntar §mm'% fMmnl &rm. (NEARLY READY.) MANUAL OF THE GEOGRAPHY AND HISTORY OF THE MIDDLE AGES. Translated from the French of M. Des Michels, Rector of the College of Rouen, with Additions and Corrections. BY G. W. GREENE, Professor of Modern Languages in Brown University. Accompanied with Numerous Engravings and Maps. One Volume, l2mo. TO BE FOLLOWED BY A Manual of Modern History, down to the French Revolution. A Manual of Ancient History. A History of Rom,e. V Great pains will betaken to adapt these books to the practical purposes of U« Claw Room, and for the guidance of private students. 16 <£nglisi;. HISTORICAL MISCELLANEOUS QUESTIONS. BY RICHMALL MANGNALL. "first American, from the Eighty-fourth London Edition. With large Auditions Embracing the Elements of Mythology, Astronomy, Architecture, Heraldry, &c. Adapted for Schools in the United States BY MRS. JULIA LAWRENCE. Illustrated with numerous Engravings. One Volume, 12mo. $1. CONTENTS. A Short View of Scripture History, from the Creation to the Return of the Jews — Questions from the Early Ages to the time of Julius Caesar— Miscellaneous Questions in Grecian History — Miscellaneous Questions hi General History, chiefly Ancient— Questions containing a Sketch of the most remarkable Events from the Christian Era to the close of the Eighteenth Century — Miscellaneous Questions in Roman History— Questions in English History, from the Invasion of Caesar to the Reformation — Continuation of Questions in English History, from the Reformation to the Present Time — Abstract of Early British History — Abstract of English Reigns from the Conquest — Abstract of the Scottish Reigns — Abstract of the French Reigns, from Pharamond to Philip I — Continuation of the French Reigns, from Louis VI to Louis Phillippe — Questions Re- lating to the History of America, from its Discovery to the Present Time— Abstract of Roman Kings and most distinguished Heroes— Abstract of 'the most celebrated Grecians— Of Heathen Mythology in general — Abstract of Heathen Mythology — The Elements of Astronomy— Expia- tion of a few Astronomical Terms — List of Constellations — Questions on Common Subjects — Questions on Architecture — Questions on Heraldry — Explanations of such Latin Words and Phrases as are seldom Englished — Questions on the History of the Middle Ages. " This is an admirable work to aid both teachers and parents in instructing children and youth, and there is no work of the kind that we have seen that is so well calculated " to awaken a spirit of laudable curiosity in young minds," and to satisfy that curiosity when awakened." HISTORY OF ENGLAXD, From the Invasion of Julius Csesar to the Reign of Queen Victoria. BY MRS. MARKHAM. A new Edition, with Questions, adapted for Schools in the United States. BY ELIZA ROBBINS, Author of "American Popular Lessons," " Poetry for Schools," Sfc. One Volume, l2mo. Price 75 cents. There is nothing more needed in our schools than good histories ; not the dry compends in \ resent use, but elementary works that shall suggest the moral uses of history, "and the provi- dence of God, manifest in "the affairs of men. Mr. Markham's history was used by that model for all teachers, the late Dr. Arnold, master of the great English school at Rugby, and agrees in its character with his enlightened and pious views of teaching history. It is now several years since I adapted this history to the form and price acceptable in the schools in the United States. I have recently revised it. and trust that it may be extensively serviceable in education. The principal alterations from the original are a new and more convenient division of para- eraphs. and entire omission of the conversations annexed to the chapters. In the place of these 1 have affixed questions to every page that may at once facilitate the work of the teacher and the pupil. The rational and moral features of this book first commended it to me. *nd I hava Veed it successfully with my own scholars.— Extract from the American Editor's Preface. 17 A MANUAL OF ANCIENT AND MODERN HISTORY, COMPRISING : I. Ancient History, containing the Political History, Geographical Position, and Social State of the Principal Nations of Antiquity, carefully digested from the Ancient Writers, and il- lustrated by the discoveries of Modern Travellers and Scholars. II. Modern Hlstory, containing the Rise and Progress of the principal European Nations, their Political History, and the changes in their Social Condition: with a History of the Colonies Founded by Europeans. By W. COOKE TAYLOR, LL.D., of Trinity College, Dublin. Revised, with Additions on American History, by C. S. Henry, D. D., Professor of History in the Univer- sity of N. Y., and Questions adapted for the Use of Schools and Colleges. One handsome vol., 6vo, ot 800 pages, $2,25 ; Ancient History in 1 vol. $1,25, .Modern History in 1 vol., €1,50. The Ancient History division comprises Eighteen Chapters, which include the general outlines of the History of Egypt— the Ethiopians— Babylonia and Assyria— Western Asia— Pu) estine— the Empire of the Medes and Persians— Phoenician Colonies in Northern Africa— Found- ation and History of the Grecian States — Greece — the Macedonian Kingdom and Empire — the Siaies that arose from the dismemberment of the Macedonian Kingdom and Empire — Ancient Italy— Sicily — the Roman Republic — Geographical and Political Condition of the Roman Empiro --History of the Roman Empire— and India— with an Appendix of important illustrative article*. This portion is one of the best Compends of Ancient History that ever yet has appeared. It contains a complete text for the collegiate lecturer; and is an essential hand-book for the student who is desirous to become acquainted with all that is memorable in general secular archaeology. The Modern History portion is divided into Fourteen Chapters, on the following general subjects : — Consequences of the Fall of the Western Empire — Rise and Establishment of the Saracenic Power — Restoration of the Western Empire — Growth of the Papal Power — Revival of Literature — Progress of Civilization and Invention — Reformation, and Commencement of the States System in Europe— Augustan Ages of England and France — Mercantile and Colonial Sys- tem—Age of Revolutions— French Empire— History of the Peace— Colonization— China— the Jews — with Chronological and Historical Tables and other Indexes. Dr. Henry has appended a new chapter on the History of the United States. This Manual of Modern History, by Mr. Taylor, is the most valuable and instructive work concerning the general subjects which it comprehends, that can be found in the whole department of historical literature. Mi. Taylor's book is fast superseding all other compends, and is already adopted as a text-book in Harvard, Columbia, Yale, New-York, Pennsylvania and Brown Uni- versities, and several leading Academies. MANUAL ANCIENT GEOGKAPHY AND HISTOEY. BY WILHELM PUTZ, PRINCIPAL TUTOR IN THE GYMNASIUM OP DUREN. Translated from the German. EDITED BY THE REV. THOMAS K. ARNOLD, M. A. Author of a Series of" Greek and Latin Text-Books." One volume, 12mo. $1. fcd** This work supplies a desideratum in our classical Schools. " At no period has History presented such strong claims upon the attention of the learned, as at the present day ; and to no people were its lessons of such value as to those of the United States. With no past of our own to revert to, the great masses of our better educated are tempted to over- look a science, which comprehends all others in its grasp. To prepare a text-book, which shall present a full, clear, and accurate view of the ancient world, its geography, its political, civil, social, religions state, must be the result only of vast industry and learning. Our examination of the present volume leads us to believe, that as a text-hook on Ancient History, for Colleges and Academies, it is the best compend vet published. It bears marks in its methodical arrange- ment, and condensation of materials, of the untirine patience of German scholarship; and in its progress through the English and American press, has been adapted for acceptable use in our best institutions. A noticeable feature of the book, is its pretty complete list of "sources of in- formation " upon the nations which it describes. This will be an invaluable aid to the student in his future course of reading " 18 A DICTIONARY OF THE ENGLISH LANGUAGE, CONTAINING THE PRONUNCIATION, ETYMOLOGY, AND EXPLANATION OF ALL WORMS AD- THORIZED BY EMINENT WRITERS; To which are added, a Vocabulary of the Roots of English Words, and an Accented List of Greek, Latin, and Scripture Proper Names 8Y ALEXANDER REID, A.M., Rector of the Circus School, Edinburgh. With a Critical Preface, by Henry Reed, Professor of English Literature in the University of Pennsylvania, and an Appendix, showing the Pronunciation of nearly 3jOU ' the most important Geographical Names. One volume, 12iy* of nearly 600 pages, bound in Leather. Price $1. Among the wants of our time was a good dictionary of our own language, especially adapted for academies and schools. The books which have long been in use were of little value to tho junior students, "being too concise in the definitions, and immethodical in the arrangement. Reid's English Dictionary was compiled expressly to develop the precise analogies and "various properties of the authorized words m general use, by the standard authors and orators who use our vernacular tongue. Exclusive of the large number of proper names which are appended, this Dictionary includes four especial improvements— and when their essential value to the student is considered, the sterling character of the work as a hand-book of our language will be instantly perceived. The primitive word is distinguished by a larger type; and when there are any derivatives from it. they follow in alphabetical order, and the part of speech is appended, thus furnishing a complete classification of all the connected analogous words of the same species. With this facility to comprehend accurately the determinate meaning of the English word, is conjoined a rich illustration for the linguist. The derivation of all the primitive words is dis- tinctly given, and the phrases of the languages whence they are deduced, whether composite or simple ; so that the student of foreign languages, both ancient and modern, by a reference to any word, can ascertain the source whence if has been adopted into our own "form of speech. This is a great acquisition to the person who is anxious to use words in their utmost clearness of meaning. To these advantages is subjoined a Vocabulary of the Roots of English Words, which is of peculiar value to the collegian. ~The fifty pages which it includes, furnish the linguist wiih a wide-spread field of research, equally amusing and instructive. There is also added an Ac- cented List, to the number of fifteen thousand, of Greek, Latin, and Scripture Proper Names. BURNHAM'S SERIES OF ARITHMETICS FOR COMMON SCHOOLS AND ACADEMIES. PART FIRST is a work on Mental Arithmetic. The philosophy of the mode of teaching adopted in this work, is : commence where the child commences, and proceed as the child pro- ceeds : fall in with his own mode of arriving at truth : aid him to think for himself, and do not the thinking for him. Hence a series of exercises are given, by which the child is made familiar with the process, which he has already gone through with in acquiring his present knowledge. These exercises interest the child, and prepare him for future rapid progress. The plan is so clearly unfolded by illustration and example, that he who follows it can scarcely fail to secure, on the part of his pupils, a thorough knowledge of the subject. PART SECOND is a work on Written Arithmetic. It is the result of a long experience in teaching, and contains sufficient of Arithmetic for the practical business purposes of life. It illustrates more fully and applies more extendedly and practically the principle of Cancellation than any other Arithmetical treatise. This method as here employed in connection with the or- dinary, furnishes a variety of illustrations, which cannot fail to interest and instruct the scholar. It is a prominent idea throughout, to impress upon the mind of the scholar the truth that he will never discover, nor need a new principle beyond the simple rules. The pupil is shown, by a variety of new modes of illustration, that new names and new positions introduce no new prin- ciple, but that they are merely matters of convenience. Fractions are treated and explained the same as whole numbers. Formulas are also given for drilling the scholar upon the Blackboard, which will be found of service to many teachers of Common Schools. 20 tfnglislj. A TEEATISE ON ALGEBRA, FOE THE USE OF SCHOOLS AND COLLEGES BY S. CHASE, PEOFESSOR OF MATHEMATICS IN DARTMOUTH COLLEOB. One volume, 12mo, 3-10 pages. Price 01. This is aii elemenlary work on the science of Algebra, intended to exhibit such a view of Its principles' as best to prepare the student for the farther pursuit of mathematical studies. It has been the special effort of the author— and we think he has been successful — to enunciate tbe principles of his work with transparent clearness, to demonstrate them rigorously, and to illus- trate them by strictly pertinent examples. His discussion of the theory of exponents and powera he claims to be original. — N. Y. Tribune. FIEST LESSONS IN GEOMETRY, UPON THE MODEL OF COLBORN'S FIRST LESSONS LN ARITHMETIC. BY ALPHEUS CROSBY, PROFESSOR OF MATHEMATICS IN DARTMOUTH COLLEGE. One volume, 16mo, 170 pages. Price 37^ cents. generally approved of as It is very generally adopted throughout the States, This work is very generally approved of as the best elementary text-book on the subject, dot PRIMARY LESSONS: BEING A SPELLER AND READER, ON AN ORIGINAL PLAN. In which one letter is taught at a lesson, with its power ; an application being immediately made, in words, of each letter thus learned, and those words being directly arranged into reading lessons. BY ALBERT D. WRIGHT, AUTHOR OF "ANALYTICAL ORTHOGRAPHY," "PHONOLOGICAL CHART," ETC. One neat volume, ISmo, containing 144 pages, and 28 engravings. Price 12^ cents, bound. ZOOLOGY DESIGNED TO AFFORD PUPILS IN COMMON SCHOOLS AND ACADEMIES A KNOWLEDGE OF THE ANIMAL KINGDOM, ETC. BY PROFESSOR J. Jy€GER. One volume, ISmo, with numerous Illustrations. Price 42 cents. " The distinguished ability of the author of this work, both while engaged during nearly leu years as Professor of Botany', Zoology, and Modern Languages, in Princeton College, N. J., and since as a lecturer in some of the most distinguished literary institutions, together with the rare advantages derived from his extensive travels in various parts of the world, under the patronage of the Emperor of Russia, affording superior facilities for the acquisition of knowledge in his department, have most happily adapted Professor Jasger to the task he has with so much abiiitj' performed, viz. : that of presenting to the public one of the most simple, engaging, and useful Class Books of Zoology that we have seen. It is peculiarly adapted to the purpose he had in view, namely, of supplying a School Book on this subject for our Common Schools and Acada- mies, which shall be perfectly comprehensible to the minds of beginners. In this respect, he has. we think, most admirably succeeded, and we doubt not that this little work will become one of the most popular Class Books of Zoology in the country." Letters bestowing the highest encomiums on the work have been received from Prof. Tayler Lewis, Dr. F. R. Beck, Dr. Campbell, of Albany, and various other well known scientific gen- tlemen. 21 THE FIRST HISTORY OF ROME, WITH QUESTIONS. BY E. M. 8EWELL, Author of Amy Herbert, &c. &c. One rolume, 16mo. 50 eta. Extract from Editor's Preface. u History is the narrative of real events in the order and circumstances in which they occurred ; xnd of all histories, that of Rome comprises a series of events more interesting and instructive to youthful readers than any other that has ever been written. " Of the manner in which Miss Sewell has executed this work we can scarcely speak in terms of approbation too strong. Drawing her materials from the best — that is to say, the most reli- able — sources, she has incorporated tnem in a narrative at once unostentatious, perspicuous, and graphic; manifestly aiming throughout to be clearly understood by those for whom she wrote, and to impress deeply and permanently on their minds what she wrote ; and in both of these aims we think she has been eminently successful." THE MYTHOLOGY OF ANCIENT GREECE AND ITALY, FOR THE USE OF SCHOOLS. BY THOMAS KEIGHTLEY. One vol. 16mo. 42 cts. " This is a neat little volume, and well adapted to the purpose for which it was prepared. It piTsents, in a very compendious and convenient form, every thing relating to the subject, of im^rtance to the young student." — L. I. Star. r P N F R AT HISTORY OF CIVILIZATION IN EUROPE, FROM TE T E FALL OF THE ROMAN EMPIRE TO THE FRENCH REVOLUTION. BY M. GUIZOT. .Eighth American, from the second English, edition, with occasional Notes, by C. S. Henry, D. D. One volume, 12mo. 75 cts. ■ u M. Guizot, in his" instructive lectures, has given us an epitome of modern histor -, distin- guished by all the merit which, in another department, renders Blackstone a subject of such Beculiar and unbounded praise. A work closely condensed, including nothing useless, omit- tine nothing essential; written with grace, and conceived and arranged with consummate ■ t ability."— Boston Traveller. tr^— The above valuable work has been introduced into Harvard University, Union yOcUegs, University of Pennsylvania, New- York University, <3"c. #c. IN PREPARATION, ^ASY LESSONS IN LANDSCAPE, FOR THE PENCIL. BY F. N. OTIS. EN THREE PARTS, EACH CONTAINING SIXTEEN LESSONS. Price, 38 cts. each part. 'These Lessons are .intended for the use of schools and families, and are so arranged that, -•with the aid of the accompanying directions, teachers unacquainted with drawing may intro ^luce it successfully into their schools ; and those unable to avail themselves of the advantages ■pis. teacher, mayjpvjrsye the study of drawing without difficulty. BOJESEN AND ARNOLD'S MANUALS of GREEK and ROMAN ANTIQUITIES A MANUAL OF GKECIAN ANTIQUITIES. BY DR. E. F. BOJESEN, Piofe38or of the Greek Language and Literature in the University of Soro. Translated from the German. CITED, WITH NOTES AND A COMPLETE SERIES OF QUESTIONS, BY TIIE REV. THOMAJ K. ARNOLD, M. A. FIRST AMERICAN EDITION, REVISED WITH ADDITIONS AND CORRECTIONS One neat volume, 12mo. Price 62£ cents. A MANUAL OF ROMAN ANTIQUITIES WITH A SHORT HISTORY OF ROMAN LITERATURE. BY DR. E. F. BOJESEN. EDITED BY THOMAS K. ARNOLD, M. A. One neat volume. 12mo. Price 62£ cents. %* THE ABOVE TWO VOLUMES BOUND IN ONE. PRICE $1. Tne present manuals of Greek and Roman Antiquities are farsuperior to any thing on the same to )ics as yet offered to the American public. A principal Review of Germany says of the Roman Manual : — " Small as the compass of it is, we may confidently affirm that it is a great improvement jon all preceding works of the kind). We no longer meet with the wretched old method, in which subjects essentially distinct are herded together, and connected subjects disconnected, but have a simple, systematic arrangement, by which the reader easily receives a clear representation of Roman life. We no longer stumble against countless errors in detail, which, though long ago assailed and extirpated by Niebuhr and others, have found their last place of refuge in our Manuals. Th« recent investigations of Philologists and jurists have been extensively, but carefully and circum- spectly used. The conciseness and precision which the author has every where prescribed to himself presents the superficial observer from perceiving the essential superiority of the book to its prede- cessors, but whoever subjects it to a careful examination will discover this on every page." The Editor says :— " I fully believe that the pupil will receive from these little works a correct «nd tolerably complete picture of Grecian and Roman life ; what I may call the political por jons — the account of the national constitutions and their effects — appear to me to be of gresf vie • and the very moderate extent of each volume admits of its being thoroughly mastered— of U ixnng flOT up and retained." From. Professor Lincoln, of Brown University. I found on mj table after a short absence from home, your edition of Bojesen s Greek and Ro oiau Antiquities. Pray accept my acknowledgments for it. I am agreeably surprised to find on examining it, that within so very narrow a compass ftr so comprehensive a subject, the book con- tains jo much valuable matter, and indeed so far as I see. omits noticing no «opics essential. It will be a very useful book in Schools and Colleges, and it is far superior to anr thing that I knew of the same kind. Besides being cheap and accessible to all students it has the grea' leerit o4 * scassiiig its topics in a consecutive and connected manner." 19 >j /# 027 249 686 9 Hi mm H m WHS mt ■ WtifiMl Ml Hill Bilili in m 11111 ihhhi 4 Hfifuooffiffl RH81 m H n